Selected quad for the lemma: life_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
life_n believe_v know_v preposterous_a 18 3 16.9473 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A68449 A catholike and ecclesiasticall exposition of the holy Gospell after S. Iohn. Gathered out of all the singuler and approued deuines (which the Lorde hath giuen vnto his Church) by Augustine Marlorate. And translated out of Latin into Englishe by Thomas Timme minister. Seene and allovved according to the order appoynted; Novi Testamenti catholica expositio ecclesiastica. English. Selections Marlorat, Augustin, 1506-1562.; Tymme, Thomas, d. 1620. 1575 (1575) STC 17406; ESTC S114256 780,235 632

There are 49 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

❧_o a_o catholic_a and_o ecclesiastical_a exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n after_o s._n john_n gather_v out_o of_o all_o the_o singular_a and_o approve_a divines_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v unto_o his_o church_n by_o augustine_n marlorate_v and_o translate_v out_o of_o latin_a into_o english_a by_o thomas_n timme_n minister_n see_v and_o allow_v according_a to_o the_o order_n appoint_v ¶_o imprint_v at_o london_n by_o thomas_n marsh_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1575._o ¶_o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a lord_n thomas_n earl_n of_o sussex_n viscount_n fitzwalter_n lord_n of_o egremont_n and_o of_o burnell_n one_o of_o the_o queen_n majesty_n honourable_a privy_a counsel_n and_o lord_n high_a chamberlain_n of_o her_o house_n of_o the_o noble_a order_n of_o the_o garter_n knight_n justice_n of_o oyer_n of_o the_o forest_n park_n warrayne_n and_o chase_n from_o trent_n southwarde_a and_o captain_n of_o the_o gentleman_n pensioner_n and_o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a lady_n his_o wife_n increase_n of_o honour_n and_o true_a knowledge_n in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o great_a profit_n which_o the_o christian_a mind_n be_v to_o receyve_v by_o read_v this_o book_n be_v the_o cause_n why_o i_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o translate_v it_o out_o of_o latin_a into_o the_o english_a tongue_n and_o the_o recommend_v thereof_o the_o more_o diligent_o to_o have_v it_o read_v be_v the_o occasion_n which_o move_v i_o to_o dedicate_v my_o part_n therein_o to_o your_o honour_n for_o what_o english_a man_n be_v there_o which_o will_v not_o think_v it_o a_o book_n most_o worthy_a the_o read_n which_o he_o see_v warrant_v by_o your_o name_n the_o honourable_a and_o general_a report_n whereof_o hartn_v i_o to_o present_v it_o unto_o you_o wherein_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o deep_a and_o divine_a evangelist_n saint_n john_n the_o marrow_n of_o all_o commentary_n upon_o he_o under_o the_o name_n of_o marlorates_n collection_n last_o and_o least_o my_o faithful_a travel_n to_o turn_v they_o both_o to_o the_o use_n of_o my_o country_n the_o thing_n i_o know_v your_o honour_n will_v like_v well_o because_o as_o i_o hear_v you_o can_v skilful_o judge_v so_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o have_v make_v your_o choice_n what_o to_o read_v which_o so_o much_o brute_v the_o credit_n of_o your_o ability_n find_v out_o by_o effect_n as_o for_o my_o labour_n may_v it_o please_v your_o honour_n to_o like_v it_o as_o come_v from_o one_o which_o catch_v with_o the_o commendation_n of_o your_o learning_n and_o wisdom_n general_o noyze_v can_v not_o but_o offer_v myself_o to_o you_o as_o the_o wonder_a queen_n of_o saba_n can_v not_o rest_v till_o she_o have_v see_v salomon_n person_n of_o who_o wisdom_n she_o have_v hard_o so_o much_o and_o withal_o i_o think_v it_o good_a in_o offer_v my_o labour_n to_o your_o honour_n to_o join_v you_o both_o together_o think_v with_o myself_o that_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o such_o skill_n and_o judgement_n be_v in_o so_o honourable_a a_o man_n must_v needs_o by_o society_n of_o match_n work_n like_o effect_n in_o so_o honourable_a a_o mate_n wherefore_o not_o to_o trouble_v your_o honour_n with_o long_a speech_n i_o take_v my_o leave_n recommend_v my_o poor_a pain_n to_o your_o honour_n protection_n the_o recompense_n whereof_o you_o shall_v receive_v in_o your_o read_n of_o the_o book_n who_o fruit_n will_v bring_v by_o god_n grace_n health_n to_o your_o soul_n and_o continuance_n of_o your_o honor._n your_o honour_n most_o humble_a thomas_n timme_n ❧_o a_o catholic_a and_o ecclesiastical_a exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n after_o s._n john_n the_o argument_n although_o the_o word_n of_o god_n depend_v or_o hang_v not_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n yet_o notwithstanding_o 4._o 1._o john_n 4._o as_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o prove_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o so_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o which_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n do_v keep_v their_o authority_n in_o the_o same_o to_o the_o end_n the_o testimony_n which_o they_o bring_v concern_v the_o truth_n may_v more_o firm_o abide_v with_o the_o faithful_a but_o true_o this_o gospel_n which_o john_n bring_v be_v nothing_o else_o than_o a_o testimony_n of_o christ_n jesus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o life_n of_o man_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n the_o bread_n of_o life_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n the_o resurrection_n the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n the_o good_a shephearde_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o to_o be_v short_a the_o only_a saviour_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v convenient_a therefore_o that_o we_o know_v who_o this_o be_v which_o so_o bear_v witness_n of_o he_o which_o be_v conversaunt_a among_o man_n have_v the_o show_n of_o a_o servant_n 2._o philip._n 2._o be_v in_o the_o similytude_n of_o man_n and_o find_v in_o his_o apparel_n as_o a_o man_n be_v tempt_v in_o all_o thing_n as_o we_o be_v and_o yet_o without_o sin_n this_o one_o witness_n be_v to_o be_v credit_v of_o we_o even_o as_o well_o as_o a_o thousand_o 4._o heb._n 4._o because_o he_o be_v one_o that_o write_v these_o thing_n to_o the_o edify_a of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o the_o common_a profit_n of_o all_o man_n not_o by_o the_o common_a fame_n and_o report_n of_o other_o man_n but_o by_o that_o which_o be_v most_o sure_a and_o infallible_a namely_o by_o that_o which_o he_o hear_v and_o see_v himself_o even_o as_o he_o himself_o speak_v of_o himself_o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o history_n say_v 19_o john_n 19_o he_o which_o see_v bare_a witness_n and_o his_o witness_n be_v true_a and_o he_o know_v that_o he_o speak_v truth_n that_o you_o may_v believe_v and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v that_o which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n which_o we_o have_v hear_v which_o we_o have_v see_v which_o we_o have_v look_v upon_o and_o our_o hand_n have_v handle_v of_o the_o word_n of_o life_n we_o show_v unto_o you_o for_o this_o writer_n of_o the_o sacred_a history_n 1._o 1._o john_n 1._o or_o gospel_n be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o brother_n of_o the_o apostle_n james_n bear_v in_o galilee_n and_o the_o son_n of_o zebede_n and_o solomon_n as_o many_o think_v of_o who_o call_v to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o apostle_n s._n matthew_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n make_v mention_v apt_o therefore_o he_o call_v this_o history_n the_o gospel_n for_o he_o do_v more_o large_o and_o plain_o set_v forth_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n than_o the_o other_o evangelist_n the_o which_o thing_n be_v forseen_v by_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n call_v this_o our_o evangelist_n and_o his_o brother_n also_o the_o son_n of_o thunder_n or_o as_o mark_n have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d furthermore_o the_o other_o three_o evangelist_n be_v very_o large_a inset_a forth_o the_o life_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o our_o evangelist_n short_o touch_v those_o thing_n stand_v more_o upon_o that_o doctrine_n by_o the_o which_o both_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n and_o also_o the_o power_n of_o his_o death_n &_o resurrection_n be_v explicate_v and_o to_o be_v short_a all_o of_o they_o seek_v to_o set_v forth_o christ_n the_o first_o three_o namely_o matthew_n mark_v and_o luke_n do_v set_v before_o we_o if_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v the_o body_n but_o john_n the_o soul_n insomuch_o that_o this_o gospel_n may_v true_o be_v call_v the_o key_n which_o open_v the_o door_n to_o come_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o other_o three_o for_o who_o soever_o shall_v attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n power_n the_o which_o be_v here_o cunning_o express_v he_o at_o the_o length_n shall_v read_v with_o profit_n that_o which_o the_o other_o evangelist_n have_v write_v as_o concern_v the_o redeemer_n neither_o be_v it_o do_v without_o the_o singular_a counsel_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o the_o gospel_n write_v by_o matthew_n mark_v and_o luke_n shall_v be_v publish_v and_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o world_n before_o that_o which_o be_v write_v by_o john_n for_o the_o weak_a ear_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o capable_a of_o so_o great_a thunder_n therefore_o it_o be_v convenient_a that_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n shall_v first_o of_o all_o be_v set_v forth_o his_o nativity_n describe_v and_o how_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n and_o of_o the_o stock_n of_o david_n by_o what_o document_n he_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o true_a messiah_n how_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n he_o suffer_v and_o be_v bury_v and_o rise_v again_o the_o third_o
have_v speak_v of_o faith_n and_o the_o virtue_n thereof_o to_o the_o end_n therefore_o he_o may_v show_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v not_o in_o vain_a which_o be_v repose_v in_o christ_n he_o declare_v that_o all_o power_n to_o save_v be_v wholye_a give_v to_o the_o son_n because_o he_o be_v love_v exceedinglye_o of_o the_o father_n m._n john_n baptiste_n have_v hear_v the_o heavenlye_a voice_n by_o which_o the_o father_n speak_v from_o heaven_n say_v 3.17_o math._n 3.17_o this_o be_v my_o well-beloved_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v now_o the_o whole_a inheritance_n can_v but_o belong_v to_o the_o well-beloved_a son_n therefore_o when_o john_n be_v about_o to_o say_v and_o have_v give_v all_o thing_n into_o his_o hand_n he_o very_o well_o add_v first_o the_o father_n love_v the_o son_n question_n c._n but_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o reason_n do_v he_o hate_v all_o other_o answer_n be_v make_v hereunto_o answer_v answer_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o the_o common_a love_n with_o the_o which_o god_n love_v man_n and_o other_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n but_o of_o that_o singular_a and_o special_a love_n which_o beginning_n at_o the_o son_n flow_v from_o thence_o to_o all_o other_o creature_n for_o this_o love_n of_o god_n by_o which_o he_o love_v his_o son_n love_v we_o also_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o do_v communicate_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o hand_n all_o good_a thing_n bu_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v he_o love_v we_o in_o his_o well-beloved_a son_n 1.6_o ephe_n 1.6_o and_o have_v give_v all_o thing_n into_o m._n these_o few_o word_n appertain_v great_o to_o our_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o depend_v upon_o christ_n as_o upon_o the_o lord_n of_o all_o bu_n for_o all_o thing_n as_o well_o visible_a as_o invisible_a and_o whatsoever_o else_o without_o exception_n have_v the_o father_n give_v unto_o he_o m._n to_o be_v in_o his_o power_n in_o his_o proper_a possession_n and_o in_o his_o disposition_n &_o government_n bu_n i_o say_v he_o have_v give_v unto_o he_o all_o thing_n not_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n he_o want_v they_o at_o any_o time_n or_o that_o he_o be_v not_o equal_a with_o the_o father_n in_o omnipotency_n for_o he_o say_v glorifye_v i_o now_o o_o father_n with_o thyself_o with_o the_o same_o glory_n which_o i_o have_v with_o thou_o before_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n cyr._n but_o because_o when_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v incarnate_a and_o make_v man_n and_o be_v humble_v to_o the_o death_n even_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n therefore_o god_n have_v exalt_v he_o &_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n which_o he_o have_v take_v be_v say_v to_o have_v receive_v some_o what_o not_o as_o from_o another_o but_o as_o his_o own_o proper_a right_n m._n and_o he_o be_v say_v so_o to_o have_v receyve_v the_o same_o not_o to_o refer_v that_o to_o himself_o alone_o which_o he_o have_v receyve_v but_o liberal_o to_o dispense_v the_o same_o to_o other_o in_o consideration_n whereof_o he_o call_v all_o man_n unto_o he_o say_v come_v unto_o i_o all_o you_o that_o travail_n 11.27_o mat._n 11.27_o etc._n etc._n also_o he_o say_v all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o i_o 28.18_o mat._n 28.18_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n go_v you_o therefore_o unto_o all_o nation_n neither_o take_v he_o this_o power_n by_o force_n or_o violence_n nor_o yet_o do_v he_o buy_v the_o same_o the_o which_o happen_v as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n but_o take_v the_o same_o natural_o of_o the_o father_n as_z the_z only_o beget_v and_o well-beloved_a son_n of_o god_n bu_n the_o which_o be_v do_v for_o our_o sake_n for_o as_o it_o be_v say_v he_o have_v receyve_v all_o those_o thing_n for_o we_o and_o distribute_v they_o unto_o we_o and_o make_v they_o subject_a unto_o our_o power_n that_o we_o may_v be_v lord_n of_o life_n of_o death_n of_o man_n of_o devil_n and_o of_o all_o other_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n whether_o it_o be_v paul_n or_o apollo_n 3.22_o 1._o cor._n 3.22_o or_o cephas_n either_o the_o world_n either_o life_n either_o death_n whether_o they_o be_v present_a thing_n or_o thing_n to_o come_v all_o be_v you_o and_o you_o be_v christ_n and_o christ_n be_v go_n of_o the_o like_a benefit_n of_o god_n 8.7_o psal_n 8.7_o and_o of_o the_o same_o glory_n appertain_v to_o man_n speak_v the_o prophet_n david_n in_o his_o psalm_n 36._o he_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o son_n have_v everlasting_a life_n he_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o see_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o son_n c._n he_o add_v this_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v not_o only_o know_v that_o all_o grace_n and_o goodness_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v in_o christ_n but_o also_o that_o we_o may_v know_v how_o to_o get_v and_o enjoy_v the_o same_o he_o say_v that_o the_o way_n to_o enjoy_v grace_n and_o everlasting_a life_n be_v by_o faith_n christ_n faith_n obtain_v salvation_n in_o christ_n and_o not_o without_o good_a reason_n because_o by_o the_o same_o we_o possess_v christ_n who_o bring_v with_o he_o righteousness_n and_o life_n the_o fruit_n of_o righteousness_n m._n he_o say_v not_o simp_o he_o that_o believe_v but_o he_z that_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n by_o the_o which_o note_n the_o christian_a faith_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o other_o nation_n yea_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o jew_n because_o we_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n christ_n jesus_n who_o the_o whole_a world_n contemn_v and_o deryde_v this_o be_v our_o foolishness_n in_o this_o world_n have_v everlasting_a life_n bu_n he_o speak_v here_o in_o the_o present_a tense_n life_n life_n everlasting_a in_o this_o life_n say_v he_o have_v he_o say_v not_o he_o shall_v have_v for_o he_o possess_v already_o everlasting_a life_n wait_v in_o hope_n for_o that_o which_o he_o be_v assure_v he_o shall_v have_v moreover_o the_o faithful_a feel_v in_o this_o carnal_a life_n vital_a motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o life_n itself_o 2.20_o gala._n 2.20_o the_o apostle_n witness_v i_o live_v yet_o now_o not_o i_o but_o christ_n live_v in_o i_o and_o the_o life_n that_o i_o now_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n i_o live_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o love_v i_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o i_o life_n be_v set_v against_o death_n against_o malediction_n and_o condemnation_n signify_v justification_n absolution_n happiness_n and_o everlasting_a blessedness_n he_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o son_n c._n as_o he_o propound_v life_n in_o christ_n to_o allure_v we_o unto_o he_o by_o the_o sweetness_n of_o the_o same_o even_o so_o now_o he_o denounse_v unto_o they_o eternal_a death_n which_o believe_v not_o in_o christ_n he_o say_v not_o simp_o he_o which_o believe_v not_o but_o he_z which_o believe_v not_o the_o son_n for_o all_o unbeléefe_n be_v not_o condemn_v but_o that_o only_a which_o despise_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o which_o beléeve_v none_o of_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o under_o this_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n so_o that_o he_o believe_v the_o son_n of_o god_n c._n also_o this_o sentence_n do_v proper_o pertain_v unto_o they_o as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o another_o place_n which_o reject_v the_o gospel_n preach_v unto_o they_o for_o although_o all_o mankind_n be_v wrap_v in_o like_a destruction_n yet_o notwithstanding_o great_a vengeance_n shall_v fall_v upon_o those_o which_o refuse_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o be_v their_o deliverer_n shall_v not_o see_v life_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o shall_v never_o enjoy_v life_n m._n by_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n life_n and_o entrance_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v not_o deny_v to_o the_o unbeléeving_a without_o a_o emphasis_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v he_o which_o beléeve_v not_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o have_v everlasting_a life_n that_o he_o shall_v never_o enjoy_v so_o much_o as_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o same_o bu_n so_o say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o nicodemus_n 3.3_o john_n 3.3_o except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o he_o can_v not_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god._n also_o he_o say_v except_o you_o believe_v that_o i_o be_o he_o 8.24_o john_n 8.24_o you_o shall_v dye_v in_o your_o sin_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v here_o oppose_v against_o life_n therefore_o it_o comprehend_v all_o misery_n calamitye_n unhappiness_n sickness_n povertye_n vengeance_n death_n sin_n malediction_n punishment_n and_o torment_n aug._n he_o say_v not_o the_o
when_o he_o purpose_v to_o persuade_v the_o truth_n for_o nothing_o can_v stay_v or_o hold_v back_o they_o who_o he_o have_v purpose_v to_o call_v but_o they_o will_v forsake_v all_o and_o follow_v he_o who_o they_o know_v to_o be_v the_o saviour_n a._n as_o for_o example_n zache_n mathewe_n paul_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n 31._o in_o the_o mean_a while_n his_o disciple_n pray_v he_o say_v master_n eat_v bu_n here_o also_o the_o evangelist_n incert_v or_o wean_v in_o the_o talk_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o disciple_n begin_v concern_v the_o apostleship_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o gentile_n the_o which_o very_o well_o agree_v with_o this_o present_a place_n a_o great_a number_n of_o samaritan_n and_o gentile_n come_v now_o apace_o to_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n m._n therefore_o the_o disciple_n be_v ignorant_a what_o the_o lord_n have_v do_v and_o see_v that_o he_o have_v no_o appetite_n to_o eat_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o know_v that_o he_o be_v weary_a of_o his_o journeye_n and_o travail_n put_v he_o in_o mind_n and_o pray_v he_o also_o to_o eat_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o will_v refresh_v and_o strengthen_v his_o body_n by_o eat_v and_o this_o which_o the_o disciple_n do_v be_v not_o rashlye_a or_o unmannerlye_o do_v but_o proceed_v rather_o of_o a_o godly_a care_n which_o man_n always_o have_v for_o those_o who_o they_o love_v otherwise_o it_o may_v seem_v very_o uncivil_a and_o rude_a that_o the_o servant_n shall_v will_n his_o master_n to_o eat_v 32._o he_o say_v unto_o they_o i_o have_v meat_n to_o eat_v that_o you_o wot_v not_o of_o r._n look_v what_o manner_n of_o person_n the_o man_n be_v so_o he_o speak_v and_o so_o he_o think_v hereupon_o the_o apostle_n as_o yet_o but_o carnal_a speak_v of_o carnal_a meat_n and_o carnal_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n but_o christ_n be_v spiritual_a speak_v of_o spiritual_a food_n a._n and_o as_o he_o take_v occasion_n upon_o the_o water_n which_o the_o woman_n will_v have_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o well_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o spiritual_a water_n and_o to_o teach_v the_o woman_n even_o so_o he_o take_v occasion_n of_o the_o meat_n which_o the_o disciple_n offer_v he_o to_o prepare_v they_o &_o to_o make_v they_o ready_o for_o that_o ambassage_n on_o which_o he_o mean_v to_o send_v they_o c._n and_o in_o deed_n the_o metaphor_n of_o the_o meat_n and_o drink_n have_v the_o great_a grace_n because_o it_o be_v bring_v in_o very_o apt_o and_o in_o good_a time_n of_o the_o present_a talk_n cyr._n because_o therefore_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o teacher_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n he_o teach_v they_o by_o his_o example_n that_o they_o must_v have_v great_a care_n for_o man_n salvation_n than_o for_o their_o own_o body_n and_o must_v prefer_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n before_o all_o bodily_a commodity_n m._n he_o say_v not_o i_o be_o not_o hungrye_a eat_v you_o but_o i_o have_v meat_n to_o eat_v by_o which_o word_n he_o mean_v to_o stir_v uppe_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o disciple_n and_o to_o make_v they_o attentive_a to_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v follow_v and_o so_o take_v occasion_n of_o their_o request_n he_o appli_v his_o talk_n unto_o the_o present_a business_n to_o provoke_v they_o to_o desire_v that_o meat_n c._n god_n verylye_o permit_v we_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o draw_v from_o that_o which_o be_v principal_a and_o a_o great_a matter_n than_o meat_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o everye_o one_o may_v follow_v his_o vocation_n m._n so_o that_o christ_n do_v not_o here_o forbid_v his_o disciple_n to_o eat_v meat_n which_o they_o have_v buy_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o body_n and_o to_o satisfy_v nature_n but_o he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o far_a matter_n it_o be_v no_o holiness_n but_o rather_o hypocrisy_n to_o constrain_v man_n against_o their_o wylle_n to_o abstain_v from_o necessary_a meat_n a._n but_o of_o this_o matter_n we_o have_v speak_v before_o in_o our_o commentarye_n upon_o mathewe_n chapter_n twelve_o verse_n forty_o and_o eight_o 33._o therefore_o say_v the_o disciple_n among_o themselves_o have_v any_o man_n bring_v he_o aught_o to_o eat_v 16.7_o mat._n 16.7_o m._n the_o disciple_n understand_v he_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o meat_n of_o the_o body_n as_o in_o other_o place_n also_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o leven_n of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr and_o when_o he_o say_v that_o lazarus_n sléepte_v 11.11_o john_n 11.11_o they_o understand_v he_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o bodylye_a sleep_n m._n and_o because_o they_o see_v he_o talk_v familliar_o with_o the_o woman_n it_o may_v be_v that_o they_o suspect_v she_o to_o have_v bring_v he_o some_o notable_a meat_n which_o he_o have_v eat_v but_o he_o say_v not_o i_o have_v now_o eat_v meat_n which_o you_o know_v not_o of_o but_o i_o have_v meat_n to_o eat_v which_o you_o know_v not_o of_o a._n what_o marvel_n be_v it_o then_o if_o sometime_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n when_o we_o see_v that_o the_o same_o happen_v here_o to_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o m._n but_o in_o that_o they_o do_v not_o rashelye_o demand_v of_o this_o matter_n but_o say_v among_o themselves_o have_v any_o man_n bring_v he_o aught_o to_o eat_v it_o be_v to_o be_v impute_v to_o the_o like_a modesty_n whereof_o we_o speak_v before_o in_o the_o seven_o and_o twenty_o verse_n nay_o rather_o the_o confyrmation_n of_o the_o same_o m._n the_o which_o the_o evangelist_n think_v not_o good_a to_o omit_v 34._o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o my_o meat_n be_v to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o m._n the_o lord_n bear_v with_o the_o modesty_n of_o the_o disciple_n wyllinglye_o and_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n declare_v unto_o they_o that_o which_o they_o dare_v not_o demand_v to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v underderstande_v of_o what_o meat_n he_o speak_v the_o meat_n which_o he_o have_v then_o to_o eat_v he_o call_v the_o execution_n of_o his_o father_n will_n signify_v that_o the_o same_o to_o he_o be_v not_o only_o most_o ancient_a but_o also_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o which_o he_o more_o delit_v or_o in_o the_o which_o he_o will_v more_o wylinglye_o exercise_v himself_o as_o for_o example_n david_n who_o to_o the_o end_n 19.11_o psal_n 19.11_o he_o may_v commend_v the_o law_n of_o god_n do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v precious_a unto_o he_o but_o also_o more_o sweet_a than_o honey_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v follow_v christ_n we_o not_o only_o diligent_o must_v serve_v god_n but_o also_o so_o diligent_a to_o do_v his_o commandment_n that_o the_o same_o shall_v not_o be_v painful_a or_o gréevous_a unto_o us._n m._n but_o christ_n mean_v here_o that_o work_n and_o labour_n which_o he_o have_v take_v already_o with_o the_o woman_n name_o that_o he_o may_v bring_v to_o this_o city_n the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n b._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o desire_v this_o above_o all_o thing_n that_o the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v that_o many_o man_n may_v know_v and_o feel_v his_o goodness_n which_o be_v in_o i_o and_o by_o i_o a._n even_o as_o he_o say_v in_o another_o place_n this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o 6.40_o john_n 6.40_o that_o everye_o one_o which_o see_v the_o son_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o again_o he_o say_v i_o must_v be_v baptise_a with_o a_o baptism_n 10.18_o john_n 10.18_o and_o how_o be_o i_o pain_v till_o it_o be_v end_v by_o which_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o he_o earnest_o desire_v to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o dye_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o people_n even_o as_o he_o have_v receyve_v a_o commandment_n from_o the_o father_n to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o c_o he_o do_v plainelye_o enough_o declare_v what_o be_v the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n which_o he_o seek_v to_o fulfil_v namely_o to_o discharge_v that_o office_n commit_v unto_o he_o even_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n every_o man_n must_v have_v respect_n unto_o his_o vocation_n lest_o he_o attribute_v that_o unto_o god_n which_o he_o have_v rashelye_o take_v upon_o he_o after_o his_o own_o fantasy_n moreover_o what_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n be_v it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_v name_o to_o enlarge_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n to_o restore_v lose_v soul_n to_o life_n and_o to_o set_v forth_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o last_o of_o all_o to_o bring_v salvation_n to_o the_o world_n christ_n be_v wéery_v
which_o he_o have_v choose_v his_o in_o christ_n first_o of_o all_o he_o send_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n to_o show_v his_o father_n will_n wrought_v the_o manner_n how_o out_o salvation_n be_v wrought_v he_o send_v also_o his_o aposteles_a to_o preach_v concern_v the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v send_v preach_v and_o call_v the_o preacher_n be_v hard_a the_o hearer_n be_v call_v by_o hear_v come_v faith_n faith_n justifi_v the_o beleve_a the_o justify_v call_v one_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o those_o caller_n be_v save_v and_o glorify_v for_o whosoever_o shall_v call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v save_v c._n wherefore_o if_o god_n will_v have_v those_o who_o he_o have_v elect_v to_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n 2.32_o joel._n 2.32_o and_o do_v after_o this_o manner_n confirm_v and_o execute_v his_o eternal_a decree_n whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o be_v not_o content_v with_o christ_n curious_o inquire_v of_o the_o everlasting_a predestination_n seek_v all_o that_o in_o he_o lie_v to_o be_v save_v otherwise_o than_o god_n have_v determine_v god_n election_n of_o itself_o be_v hyden_n and_o secret_a but_o the_o lord_n have_v reveal_v the_o same_o by_o that_o vocation_n wherewith_o he_o have_v call_v us._n wherefore_o they_o be_v out_o of_o their_o wit_n which_o seek_v their_o own_o and_o other_o man_n salvation_n also_o out_o of_o the_o labyrinth_n of_o predestination_n not_o regard_v the_o way_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v before_o their_o eye_n nay_o by_o this_o preposterouse_a speculation_n they_o go_v about_o to_o overthrow_v the_o force_n and_o effect_n of_o predestination_n for_o if_o god_n have_v choose_v we_o to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o shall_v believe_v take_v away_o faith_n and_o our_o election_n shall_v be_v meym_v and_o unperfect_a and_o very_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v in_o the_o counsel_n and_o purpose_n of_o god_n to_o break_v the_o tontinuall_a and_o appoint_a order_n of_o the_o beginning_n and_o the_o end_n r._n be_v not_o therefore_o carefall_v about_o predestination_n neither_o be_v curious_a in_o this_o secret_a which_o belong_v to_o god_n for_o thou_o can_v not_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o heaviness_n of_o the_o eye_n see_v by_o thy_o own_o wit_n into_o so_o high_a mystery_n but_o hear_v christ_n look_v into_o christ_n in_o who_o the_o father_n have_v open_v the_o secret_a sentence_n of_o his_o predestination_n and_o in_o who_o it_o be_v at_o the_o last_o reveal_v which_o a_o long_a time_n lie_v hide_v for_o by_o christ_n we_o be_v assure_v that_o every_o one_o which_o believe_v be_v predestinate_a for_o who_o he_o have_v predestinate_a 8.30_o rom._n 8.30_o he_o he_o have_v call_v by_o his_o gospel_n that_o he_o may_v believe_v and_o that_o he_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o faith_n if_o therefore_o thou_o shall_v find_v thyself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n thou_o shall_v find_v also_o that_o thou_o be_v elect_v and_o predestinate_v by_o god_n c._n for_o as_o election_n and_o god_n call_v be_v inseparable_a and_o go_v together_o even_o so_o when_o god_n do_v effectual_o call_v we_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n let_v it_o prevail_v so_o much_o with_o we_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v confirm_v his_o decree_n concern_v our_o salvation_n with_o a_o sure_a seal_n for_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v nothing_o else_o than_o the_o seal_v of_o our_o adoption_n as_o paul_n teach_v therefore_o every_o man_n faith_n be_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n 1.22_o 2._o cor._n 1.22_o of_o god_n eternal_a predestination_n 1.13_o ephe._n 1.13_o insomuche_o that_o to_o seek_v far_o be_v great_a wickedness_n because_o he_o do_v great_a injury_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v to_o his_o simple_a testimony_n see_v and_o believe_v christ_n opese_v against_o the_o former_a sentence_n by_o which_o he_o have_v cast_v in_o the_o jew_n tooth_n their_o unbelefe_n whenas_o notwithstanding_o they_o see_v now_o in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v join_v the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n with_o the_o scence_n and_o feel_v of_o that_o divine_a power_n which_o they_o perceyve_v to_o be_v in_o christ_n insomuche_o that_o see_v be_v plain_o take_v for_o knowledge_n for_o he_o which_o plain_o know_v the_o son_n can_v choose_v but_o believe_v in_o he_o for_o he_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o only_a savioure_n god_n life_n and_o all_o in_o all_o the_o wicked_a see_v and_o know_v he_o but_o they_o do_v not_o thorough_o see_v and_o plain_o know_v he_o therefore_o be_v they_o make_v inexcusable_a because_o they_o can_v believe_v god_n or_o love_v he_o m._n and_o whereas_o he_o make_v mention_v of_o eternal_a life_n before_o the_o resurrection_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o faithful_a have_v already_o everlasting_a life_n even_o in_o this_o life_n before_o they_o be_v raise_v but_o through_o hope_n by_o which_o they_o be_v save_v and_o do_v sit_v with_o christ_n in_o the_o heaven_n and_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o same_o in_o very_a deed_n after_o the_o resurrection_n as_o we_o see_v before_o the_o which_o we_o must_v diligent_o note_n lest_o we_o think_v that_o we_o shall_v get_v life_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o good_a work_n straight_o after_o we_o have_v receyve_v faith_n but_o let_v we_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o same_o be_v attribute_v to_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o be_v regenerate_v into_o the_o dignity_n and_o inherytance_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 41._o the_o jew_n than_o murmur_v at_o he_o because_o he_o say_v i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n r._n behold_v here_o i_o pray_v you_o the_o mutable_a and_o waver_a judgement_n of_o the_o people_n a_o lytlle_n before_o they_o seek_v to_o honour_n christ_n as_o a_o king_n and_o now_o because_o they_o have_v not_o their_o will_n and_o desyer_n they_o murmur_v against_o he_o they_o conteinne_v deride_v disdain_n and_o reprove_v he_o of_o a_o lie_n bu_n he_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a faith_n which_o be_v afterward_o to_o be_v repeat_v of_o the_o godly_a that_o it_o may_v the_o more_o firm_o abide_v in_o their_o mind_n but_o that_o doctrine_n of_o piety_n be_v assault_v and_o withstand_v dyvers_o and_o by_o many_o enemy_n whereby_o we_o learn_v how_o the_o world_n be_v affect_v towards_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n c._n for_o the_o evangelist_n teach_v that_o the_o murmuring_a aroase_n here_o hence_o because_o the_o jew_n be_v offend_v at_o the_o baseness_n of_o the_o flesh_n do_v conceyve_v no_o divine_a or_o celestial_a thing_n to_o be_v in_o christ_n r._n they_o have_v require_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o lord_n whereby_o he_o may_v prove_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v beléeve_v even_o as_o moses_n have_v prove_v himself_o by_o many_o great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v send_v of_o god_n and_o who_o the_o people_n ought_v to_o obey_v and_o believe_v but_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o only_o geve_v unto_o they_o no_o new_a sign_n over_o and_o above_o those_o which_o they_o have_v see_v for_o they_o be_v sufficient_a enough_o but_o also_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v fare_n more_o excellent_a than_o moses_n and_o pronounce_v himself_o to_o be_v very_a god_n because_o he_o preach_v very_o often_o time_n of_o himself_o that_o he_o will_v give_v eternal_a life_n to_o those_o that_o will_v believe_v in_o he_o and_o also_o that_o he_o will_v preserve_v they_o from_o death_n and_o in_o the_o last_o day_n place_v they_o in_o everlasting_a bliss_n these_o thing_n when_o they_o understand_v not_o they_o begin_v to_o murmur_v against_o he_o because_o he_o extol_v himself_o above_o a_o man_n m._n but_o this_o people_n have_v as_o it_o be_v by_o inheritance_n this_o perverse_a and_o untoward_a disposition_n that_o when_o faith_n be_v needful_a they_o murmur_v and_o to_o murmur_n be_v nothing_o else_o than_o either_o by_o impatience_n murmuration_n murmuration_n or_o by_o disdain_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o complain_v and_o find_v salt_n with_o those_o thing_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v speak_v or_o do_v unjust_o thus_o often_o time_n they_o murmur_v in_o the_o wilderness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o complain_v of_o god_n and_o moses_n as_o though_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v be_v do_v unjust_o so_o to_o these_o man_n it_o seem_v that_o the_o lord_n say_v impudent_o i_o be_o the_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n but_o wherefore_o be_v they_o not_o rather_o angry_a with_o themselves_o that_o they_o understande_v not_o these_o thing_n so_o great_o necessary_a why_o do_v they_o not_o rather_o murmur_v among_o themselves_o that_o they_o love_v their_o belly_n so_o much_o wherefore_o do_v they_o not_o pray_v for_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n why_o do_v they_o not_o beseech_v he_o more_o plain_o to_o instruct_v they_o concern_v these_o
teach_v of_o the_o father_n master_n holy_a ghost_n our_o school_n master_n the_o which_o teach_v must_v not_o be_v such_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o father_n in_o this_o flesh_n but_o the_o child_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v teach_v by_o the_o inward_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n 2.10_o 1._o cor._n 2.10_o for_o they_o upon_o who_o it_o breathe_v shall_v search_v out_o the_o profound_a mystery_n of_o god_n 11.27_o mat._n 11.27_o to_o this_o effect_n also_o pertain_v this_o sentence_n no_o man_n know_v the_o son_n but_o the_o father_n also_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n 1.18_o joh._n 1.18_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v show_v he_o to_o us._n c._n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o father_n be_v only_o know_v to_o he_o he_o mean_v that_o this_o office_n proper_o belong_v unto_o himself_o to_o manifest_a he_o to_o man_n which_o otherwise_o be_v hide_v far_o from_o us._n 47._o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o that_o put_v his_o trust_n in_o i_o have_v everlasting_a life_n r_o by_o this_o sentence_n our_o savioure_n christ_n declare_v how_o we_o be_v make_v the_o disciple_n of_o his_o father_n namely_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n by_o which_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o obtain_v everlasting_a life_n what_o it_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n we_o have_v before_o declare_v for_o we_o must_v not_o imagine_v a_o confuse_a and_o vain_a faith_n which_o spoil_v christ_n of_o his_o power_n such_o a_o faith_n be_v that_o which_o the_o papist_n have_v who_o believe_v of_o christ_n as_o they_o listen_v themselves_o for_o therefore_o we_o obtain_v life_n by_o faith_n because_o we_o know_v that_o in_o christ_n all_o the_o part_n of_o life_n be_v contain_v 48._o i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n m._n after_o that_o christ_n have_v answer_v those_o murmurer_n and_o have_v sufficient_o provide_v for_o that_o offence_n which_o they_o have_v take_v by_o the_o humility_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o by_o the_o knowledge_n which_o they_o have_v of_o he_o he_o now_o consequent_o make_v repetition_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v and_o return_v to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v begin_v concern_v manna_n r._n show_v by_o a_o notable_a comparison_n how_o much_o better_o this_o quicken_a bread_n which_o he_o offer_v be_v than_o the_o old_a manna_n 49._o you_o be_v father_n do_v eat_v manna_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o be_v dead_a m._n this_o verse_n be_v two_o way_n expound_v some_o understande_v it_o general_o of_o all_o those_o father_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o do_v eat_v manna_n in_o moses_n time_n in_o the_o desert_n as_o well_o godly_a as_o ungodly_a insomuche_o that_o the_o lord_n speak_v here_o in_o this_o place_n not_o of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o of_o the_o body_n but_o othersome_a expound_v it_o of_o the_o wicked_a only_o which_o do_v eat_v manna_n without_o faith_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o the_o which_o be_v life_n and_o therefore_o be_v also_o dead_a that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o perish_v everlasting_o but_o it_o seem_v not_o necessary_a that_o we_o here_o distinguishe_v between_o the_o beléeve_a and_o the_o unbeléeve_a jew_n c_o only_a christ_n say_v that_o manna_n be_v a_o corruptible_a meat_n to_o their_o father_n m._n be_v food_n not_o of_o the_o soul_n but_o of_o the_o body_n not_o sempiternal_a but_o temporal_a which_o can_v not_o save_v they_o from_o death_n c._n it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o man_n soul_n find_v food_n no_o where_o but_o in_o he_o whereby_o they_o may_v be_v feed_v into_o everlasting_a life_n 10.3_o 1._o cor._n 10.3_o for_o we_o must_v remember_v what_o be_v speak_v in_o another_o place_n that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v here_o of_o manna_n as_o christ_n be_v a_o secret_a figure_n for_o in_o that_o respect_n paul_n call_v he_o spiritual_a meat_n but_o here_o christ_n frame_v his_o speech_n to_o his_o hearer_n who_o be_v only_o careful_a for_o the_o feed_n of_o their_o belly_n have_v no_o far_a consideration_n of_o any_o thing_n in_o manna_n he_o do_v therefore_o just_o pronounce_v that_o their_o father_n be_v dead_a that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n addict_v to_o their_o belly_n 50._o this_o be_v that_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n that_o if_o any_o man_n eat_v thereof_o he_o shall_v not_o dye_v c._n christ_n invit_v and_o call_v those_o to_o who_o he_o speak_v to_o eat_v when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o come_v that_o a_o man_n may_v eat_v for_o this_o kind_n of_o speech_n be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v eat_v of_o so_o many_o as_o will_v eat_v shall_v not_o dye_v m._n christian_n die_v aswell_o as_o other_o mortal_a man_n but_o they_o die_v only_o in_o body_n for_o a_o time_n and_o not_o in_o soul_n for_o ever_o and_o although_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o unbeléeving_n be_v immortal_a also_o yet_o notwithstanding_o their_o condition_n be_v mortal_a and_o miserable_a insomuch_o that_o be_v alive_a in_o pleasure_n they_o be_v count_v dead_a 5.6_o 1._o tim._n 5.6_o even_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o widow_n which_o live_v in_o pleasure_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o unbeléeving_n be_v not_o the_o true_a life_n but_o a_o false_a imagination_n of_o life_n and_o a_o mere_a fantasy_n by_o which_o they_o think_v themselves_o to_o live_v alone_a when_o as_o indeed_o they_o be_v stark_o dead_a we_o must_v also_o note_n the_o universal_a form_n of_o speak_v when_o he_o say_v if_o any_o man_n eat_v for_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n he_o mean_v that_o he_o be_v offer_v to_o all_o man_n insomuch_o that_o whosoever_o use_v he_o shall_v be_v preserve_v in_o life_n 51._o i_o be_o the_o live_a bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n if_o any_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n he_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o and_o the_o bread_n that_o i_o will_v gyve_v be_v my_o flesh_n which_o i_o will_v give_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n the_o lord_n do_v often_o time_n repeat_v this_o that_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v have_v everlasting_a life_n c._n because_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v how_o hardelye_o faith_n take_v place_n in_o we_o and_o how_o soon_o it_o vanish_v away_o again_o we_o all_o desire_n life_n but_o in_o seek_v of_o the_o same_o we_o foolishlye_a wander_v in_o by_o way_n and_o the_o great_a part_n despise_v the_o same_o when_o it_o be_v offer_v for_o what_o be_v he_o that_o do_v not_o fain_o and_o promise_v life_n unto_o himself_o without_o christ_n and_o what_o be_v he_o that_o be_v satisfy_v and_o content_v with_o christ_n alone_a therefore_o this_o repetition_n be_v not_o superfluous_a when_o christ_n so_o often_o time_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v he_o which_o geve_v life_n to_o the_o world_n for_o he_o take_v unto_o himself_o alone_a the_o name_n of_o bread_n that_o he_o may_v remove_v out_o of_o our_o mind_n all_o false_a and_o feign_a hope_n of_o life_n life_n christ_n be_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n m._n what_o can_v the_o glory_n and_o plenty_n of_o terrene_a thing_n profit_n in_o the_o which_o there_o be_v no_o life_n if_o so_o be_v we_o loose_v this_o bread_n in_o the_o which_o alone_o all_o salvation_n and_o everlasting_a life_n do_v consist_v c._n he_o now_o call_v that_o the_o live_a bread_n which_o before_o he_o call_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o all_o in_o one_o sense_n afterward_o he_o say_v it_o come_v from_o heaven_n because_o in_o this_o world_n the_o figure_n whereof_o pass_v and_o vanish_v away_o the_o spiritual_a and_o incorruptible_a life_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v but_o only_o in_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n of_o god_n so_o often_o as_o he_o make_v mention_v of_o this_o word_n eat_v he_o exhort_v we_o to_o faith_n which_o only_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o enjoy_v this_o bread_n to_o life_n and_o this_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a because_o there_o be_v but_o a_o few_o which_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o reach_v out_o their_o hand_n to_o put_v this_o bread_n to_o their_o mouth_n nay_o when_o the_o lord_n put_v the_o same_o to_o their_o mouth_n they_o will_v scarce_o taste_v of_o the_o same_o but_o some_o fill_n themselves_o full_a of_o wound_n and_o othersome_a be_v like_o to_o tantalus_n do_v hunger_n and_o be_v like_a to_o starve_v with_o meat_n before_o their_o mouth_n and_o the_o bread_n that_o i_o will_v give_v c._n because_o this_o secret_a power_n of_o geve_v life_n concern_v which_o he_o speak_v may_v be_v refer_v to_o his_o divine_a essen_n he_o now_o descend_v to_o the_o second_o degree_n and_o teach_v that_o life_n be_v include_v in_o his_o flesh_n that_o man_n
meet_v christ_n that_o she_o may_v secret_o entertain_v he_o because_o he_o have_v but_o late_o escape_v out_o of_o peril_n and_o the_o fury_n of_o his_o enemy_n be_v scarce_o appease_v which_o be_v a_o little_a mitigate_v by_o his_o departure_n into_o galilee_n by_o the_o hear_n of_o his_o return_n again_o may_v have_v more_o violent_o burst_v forth_o but_o mary_n sit_v still_o in_o the_o house_n m_o mary_n know_v not_o of_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o if_o she_o have_v no_o doubt_n she_o will_v have_v go_v forth_o with_o her_o sister_n to_o meet_v he_o 21._o then_o say_v martha_n unto_o jesus_n lord_n if_o thou_o have_v be_v here_o my_o brother_n have_v not_o dye_v m._n it_o beseem_v he_o which_o receive_v and_o entertain_v a_o guest_n to_o use_v frendlye_a word_n in_o salute_v and_o welcom_v that_o so_o he_o may_v declare_v his_o good_a will_n and_o fren_z hart_n so_o martha_n here_o speak_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o she_o begin_v with_o a_o complaint_n howbeit_o by_o this_o mean_v she_o do_v modest_o declare_v her_o mind_n as_o if_o she_o shall_v say_v thou_o lord_n by_o thy_o presence_n can_v have_v deliver_v my_o brother_n from_o death_n yea_o thou_o can_v do_v it_o yet_o because_o god_n will_v deny_v thou_o nothing_o and_o speak_v thus_o she_o do_v rather_o follow_v her_o affection_n then_o keep_v she_o under_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n for_o these_o word_n partly_o proceed_v from_o faith_n but_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v mix_v therewith_o which_o carry_v she_o yond_o her_o bond_n for_o in_o that_o she_o persuade_v herself_o that_o her_o brother_n shall_v not_o have_v dye_v if_o so_o be_v christ_n have_v be_v present_a where_o learn_v she_o so_o to_o believe_v very_o it_o be_v not_o conceive_v of_o any_o promise_n of_o christ_n it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o she_o rather_o fulfil_v she_o own_o desire_n than_o obay_v christ_n it_o proceed_v of_o faith_n that_o she_o attribute_v unto_o christ_n power_n and_o great_a goodness_n but_o in_o that_o she_o persuade_v herself_o of_o more_o than_o she_o have_v receive_v or_o hear_v of_o christ_n she_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o faith_n for_o we_o must_v always_o observe_v the_o mutual_a consent_n and_o agreement_n between_o the_o word_n and_o faith_n lest_o a_o man_n persuade_v himself_o of_o any_o thing_n without_o the_o warrant_v of_o god_n word_n moreover_o it_o may_v be_v that_o martha_n lean_v to_o much_o to_o the_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n therefore_o the_o faith_n of_o martha_n be_v mix_v with_o immoderate_a desire_n and_o not_o altogether_o free_a from_o superstition_n can_v not_o perfect_o shine_v only_o the_o spark_n thereof_o appear_v in_o these_o word_n she_o reckon_v christ_n among_o the_o man_n of_o god_n who_o prayer_n be_v hear_v and_o who_o obtain_v many_o thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n for_o if_o so_o be_v she_o have_v have_v the_o true_a understanding_n of_o his_o power_n she_o will_v rather_o have_v say_v i_o know_v that_o nothing_o be_v impossible_a unto_o thou_o but_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o this_o imperfection_n of_o faith_n in_o martha_n and_o in_o other_o neither_o do_v he_o severe_o reject_v the_o same_o but_o bear_v patient_o with_o it_o and_o when_o he_o see_v convenient_a time_n increase_v the_o same_o this_o méeknesse_n and_o patience_n the_o apostle_n set_v before_o we_o to_o follow_v say_v he_o that_o be_v week_n in_o the_o faith_n receive_v 23._o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o thy_o brother_n shall_v rise_v again_o m._n the_o lord_n make_v no_o answer_n to_o martha_n complain_v of_o his_o absence_n for_o he_o rather_o desyered_a to_o show_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o absence_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o raise_n up_o the_o dead_a man_n than_o by_o his_o word_n c._n but_o the_o clemency_n of_o christ_n be_v wonderful_a who_o bear_v with_o the_o infirmity_n of_o martha_n in_o those_o thing_n aforesaid_a of_o himself_o promise_v more_o unto_o she_o than_o she_o herself_o dare_v open_o and_o preciselye_o ask_v m._n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v have_v say_v be_v of_o good_a cheer_n i_o know_v what_o thou_o will_v have_v thou_o shall_v have_v thy_o desyer_n thou_o shall_v receive_v thy_o brother_n bu_n thou_o do_v believe_v that_o i_o be_v a_o good_a man_n and_o one_o in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n can_v easy_o obtain_v at_o his_o hand_n what_o i_o will_v yea_o if_o it_o be_v life_n for_o thy_o bury_a brother_n but_o i_o promise_v now_o unto_o thou_o that_o thy_o brother_n shall_v arise_v again_o by_o the_o power_n of_o i_o which_o i_o have_v of_o the_o father_n m._n all_o they_o have_v to_o note_n this_o word_n of_o consolation_n which_o be_v sorrowful_a for_o the_o departure_n of_o their_o friend_n out_o of_o this_o life_n let_v they_o be_v persuade_v that_o they_o hear_v this_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n thy_o father_n shall_v rise_v again_o thy_o son_n shall_v rise_v again_o thy_o brother_n shall_v rise_v again_o and_o thy_o friend_n shall_v rise_v again_o moreover_o in_o that_o he_o say_v not_o plain_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o but_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o it_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o modesty_n and_o humility_n which_o the_o lord_n teach_v every_o where_n 24._o martha_n say_v unto_o he_o i_o know_v that_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o in_o the_o resurrection_n at_o the_o last_o day_n again_o martha_n bewray_v the_o weakness_n of_o her_o faith_n for_o a_o weak_a faith_n look_v for_o nothing_o but_o common_a chance_n and_o fortune_n but_o true_a faith_n have_v not_o respect_n unto_o common_a course_n but_o to_o god_n promise_n c._n here_o therefore_o the_o exceed_a fearfulness_n of_o martha_n bewray_v itself_o in_o that_o she_o do_v extenuate_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n we_o say_v a_o lit_o before_o that_o she_o go_v far_o than_o be_v meet_v when_o by_o she_o own_o fantasy_n she_o imagine_v a_o sertaine_a hope_n to_o herself_o and_o now_o she_o be_v slipte_v into_o the_o contrary_a vice_n who_o when_o christ_n reched_a forth_o his_o hand_n unto_o she_o stand_v still_o tremble_v wherefore_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n unto_o ourselves_o lest_o we_o be_v destitute_a of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n ground_n our_o hope_n upon_o this_o or_o that_o when_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n and_o again_o lest_o the_o lord_n open_v his_o mouth_n shall_v find_v our_o heart_n to_o close_v and_o straight_o shut_v a._n but_o we_o see_v that_o when_o christ_n teach_v martha_n she_o hear_v he_o not_o without_o some_o fruit_n m._n worldling_n faith_n of_o the_o resurrection_n deride_v by_o worldling_n for_o first_o of_o all_o she_o beléeve_v that_o the_o last_o day_n shall_v one_o day_n come_v this_o faith_n the_o child_n of_o this_o world_n do_v deride_v and_o mock_v who_o think_v that_o this_o world_n will_v continue_v and_o abide_v for_o ever_o second_o she_o beléeve_v that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v in_o the_o last_o day_n this_o faith_n the_o saduceis_n do_v not_o alow_o neither_o can_v human_a reason_n comprehend_v the_o same_o and_o she_o do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v but_o i_o know_v that_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o in_o the_o last_o day_n so_o job_n speak_v i_o know_v that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v and_o that_o i_o shall_v rise_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o last_o day_n m._n and_o of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o general_a resurrection_n of_o all_o man_n she_o take_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o special_a resurrection_n of_o her_o brother_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n also_o let_v we_o gather_v all_o man_n shall_v rise_v again_o therefore_o i_o also_o shall_v rise_v again_o they_o shall_v rise_v again_o to_o everlasting_a life_n which_o believe_v in_o christ_n therefore_o i_o also_o shall_v rise_v again_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n do_v pardon_n and_o forgeve_v the_o penytent_n and_o beléeve_a therefore_o also_o he_o will_v pardon_v and_o forgeve_v i_o god_n will_v not_o forsake_v those_o that_o trust_v in_o he_o therefore_o he_o will_v not_o forsake_v i_o god_n resist_v the_o proud_a therefore_o he_o will_v resist_v the_o pride_n of_o antichrist_n c._n by_o this_o answer_n martha_n will_v have_v speak_v more_o than_o she_o dare_v hope_n for_o by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o if_o she_o shall_v say_v if_o so_o be_v thou_o speak_v and_o mean_v of_o the_o last_o resurrection_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o my_o brother_n shall_v rise_v again_o in_o the_o last_o day_n and_o upon_o trust_n hereof_o i_o comfort_v myself_o but_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o thou_o give_v i_o to_o understande_v some_o great_a matter_n yea_o or_o no._n 25._o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o yea_o
begin_v because_o of_o their_o malice_n but_o although_o he_o groan_v in_o himself_o for_o the_o cause_n aforesaid_a yet_o nevertheless_o he_o go_v forward_o to_o the_o grave_n of_o dead_a lazarus_n let_v we_o learn_v therefore_o in_o this_o place_n not_o to_o answer_v by_o and_o by_o to_o all_o speech_n of_o wicked_a man_n nor_o to_o cease_v from_o do_v the_o work_n of_o god_n either_o for_o the_o blindness_n malice_n reproach_n slander_v or_o ingratitude_n of_o wicked_a man_n but_o constantlye_o to_o go_v forewarde_n it_o be_v a_o cave_n a._n concern_v the_o burial_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o comeliness_n observe_v in_o the_o same_o read_v our_o exposition_n upon_o the_o fourteen_o chapter_n of_o saint_n mathewe_n begin_v at_o the_o twelve_o verse_n c._n there_o follow_v diverse_a circumstance_n in_o the_o raise_n up_o of_o lazarus_n which_o do_v more_o set_v forth_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o time_n of_o four_o day_n that_o the_o sepulchre_n have_v a_o stone_n lay_v upon_o it_o the_o which_o christ_n command_v to_o be_v take_v up_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o man_n for_o it_o follow_v 39_o jesus_n say_v take_v you_o away_o the_o stone_n martha_n the_o sister_n of_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a say_v unto_o he_o lord_n by_o this_o time_n he_o stink_v for_o he_o have_v be_v dead_a four_o day_n r._n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n as_o it_o seem_v foolish_a so_o also_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v childish_a for_o behold_v he_o which_o go_v about_o to_o raise_v up_o a_o dead_a man_n command_v the_o stone_n to_o be_v take_v away_o as_o though_o by_o the_o same_o power_n of_o the_o word_n he_o can_v not_o remove_v away_o the_o stone_n from_o the_o door_n of_o the_o sepulchre_n or_o can_v not_o bring_v forth_o the_o live_v man_n through_o the_o stone_n why_o then_o do_v he_o that_o which_o be_v great_a and_o commit_v less_o matter_n to_o other_o to_o be_v do_v for_o afterward_o he_o command_v other_o to_o loose_v the_o napkin_n that_o be_v tie_v about_o his_o face_n m._n he_o can_v in_o deed_n by_o the_o same_o power_n have_v take_v away_o the_o stone_n by_o which_o he_o go_v about_o to_o restore_v a_o dead_a man_n to_o life_n but_o he_o think_v it_o better_a to_o use_v their_o labour_n about_o all_o such_o like_a thing_n which_o stand_v by_o reserve_v only_o unto_o himself_o the_o power_n to_o raise_v up_o the_o dead_a man_n r._n first_o that_o so_o many_o as_o be_v present_a may_v be_v more_o assure_v witness_n of_o the_o miracle_n and_o secondlye_o to_o teach_v we_o to_o hope_v well_o in_o matter_n that_o fall_v out_o contrary_a to_o our_o expectation_n for_o whereas_o he_o command_v to_o take_v away_o the_o stone_n it_o seem_v to_o argue_v some_o impotencye_n to_o be_v in_o he_o but_o the_o same_o impotencye_n at_o the_o leangth_n break_v out_o and_o show_v itself_o mighty_a force_n and_o power_n lord_n by_o this_o time_n he_o stink_v the_o infidelitye_n of_o martha_n serve_v very_o much_o to_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o miracle_n for_o so_o the_o lord_n be_v wont_a to_o turn_v evell_a into_o good_a not_o by_o our_o diligence_n and_o labour_n but_o by_o his_o most_o wise_a dispensation_n m._n this_o sister_n confess_v that_o the_o dead_a carcase_n do_v savour_n or_o stink_v affirm_v open_o the_o same_o to_o have_v be_v bury_v four_o day_n that_o every_o one_o may_v have_v the_o power_n of_o christ_n in_o great_a admiration_n for_o god_n glory_n be_v oftentimes_o so_o set_v forth_o in_o we_o that_o by_o our_o misery_n corruption_n infirmitye_n and_o destruction_n the_o majesty_n of_o god_n power_n be_v make_v more_o manifest_a 13_o act_n 26._o x._o i_o cor._n i5_n 9_o ●_o tim_n i._n 13_o so_o paul_n when_o he_o will_v commend_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v show_v in_o he_o with_o open_a mouth_n confess_v in_o diverse_a place_n that_o he_o be_v a_o persecutor_n and_o a_o adversarye_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n c._n notwithstanding_o that_o which_o martha_n speak_v here_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o distrust_n as_o be_v say_v because_o she_o judge_v the_o power_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v less_o than_o it_o be_v for_o because_o nothing_o agree_v less_o with_o life_n than_o corruption_n and_o stink_n martha_n gather_v that_o there_o be_v now_o no_o hope_n of_o remedy_n euenso_fw-la when_o preposterous_a cogitation_n occupy_v our_o mind_n god_n after_o a_o sort_n be_v drive_v from_o we_o lest_o he_o shall_v finish_v his_o work_n in_o us._n martha_n verilye_o do_v so_o little_o further_o the_o raise_n of_o her_o brother_n that_o for_o she_o he_o may_v have_v lie_v for_o ever_o in_o the_o grave_n because_o she_o be_v past_o all_o hope_n of_o life_n go_v also_o about_o to_o hinder_v christ_n from_o raise_v he_o up_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o she_o have_v nothing_o less_o in_o her_o mind_n this_o the_o imbecillitye_n of_o faith_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o be_v draw_v this_o way_n and_o that_o way_n may_v fight_v and_o contend_v with_o ourselves_o martha_n lie_v not_o when_o she_o say_v i_o know_v that_o whatsoever_o thou_o ask_v of_o god_n he_o will_v geve_v it_o thou_o but_o a_o confound_a faith_n do_v little_a help_n except_o the_o same_o be_v put_v in_o use_n when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o present_a matter_n moreover_o in_o martha_n we_o may_v behold_v how_o many_o defection_n of_o faith_n there_o be_v even_o in_o the_o best_a she_o be_v the_o first_o that_o come_v to_o meet_v christ_n this_o be_v no_o small_a testimony_n of_o piety_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o she_o cease_v not_o to_o set_v and_o lie_v stop_n and_o stay_v before_o he_o in_o his_o way_n therefore_o that_o we_o may_v have_v success_n unto_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o attribute_v unto_o he_o far_o great_a power_n than_o our_o sense_n can_v comprehend_v and_o if_o so_o be_v the_o first_o promise_n of_o god_n will_v not_o content_a and_o satisfy_v we_o yet_o at_o the_o least_o when_o he_o confirm_v we_o the_o second_o and_o third_o time_n let_v we_o be_v quiet_a and_o content_a after_o the_o example_n of_o martha_n 40._o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o say_v i_o not_o unto_o thou_o that_o if_o thou_o do_v believe_v thou_o shall_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n m._n by_o these_o word_n our_o saviour_n christ_n go_v about_o to_o erect_v and_o comfort_v the_o sorrowful_a mind_n of_o martha_n which_o be_v also_o weak_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o to_o direct_v &_o bring_v she_o to_o this_o that_o she_o will_v with_o a_o steadfast_a and_o constant_a mind_n have_v only_o regard_n to_o the_o miracle_n to_o come_v c._n and_o withal_o he_o do_v reprehend_v her_o distrust_n for_o that_o she_o have_v not_o conceive_v hope_v by_o the_o hear_n of_o his_o promise_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v have_v say_v bu_n thou_o do_v object_v the_o stink_n of_o the_o corrupt_a and_o putrify_v body_n whereby_o thou_o do_v gather_v with_o thyself_o that_o the_o stone_n shall_v be_v remove_v from_o the_o grave_n in_o vain_a and_o a_o way_n make_v for_o he_o to_o arise_v which_o shall_v never_o come_v forth_o but_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o faithful_a must_v not_o be_v fix_v upon_o this_o earth_n and_o earthly_a substance_n neither_o must_v their_o ear_n be_v open_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o flesh_n which_o always_o rebell_v against_o god_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o remember_v his_o promise_n have_v they_o always_o before_o thy_o eye_n and_o to_o lean_v and_o stay_v thyself_o whole_o upon_o they_o remember_v martha_n therefore_o my_o word_n have_v that_o fail_v which_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o even_o now_o that_o if_o thou_o do_v believe_v by_o the_o death_n of_o thy_o brother_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v declare_v have_v that_o fail_v which_o i_o promise_v unthée_o saying_n thy_o brother_n shall_v rise_v again_o therefore_o the_o stink_n putrefaction_n and_o corruption_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v hinder_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n any_o thing_n at_o all_o only_o believe_v and_o thou_o shall_v find_v god_n true_a and_o omnipotent_a c._n and_o by_o this_o place_n it_o do_v appear_v that_o he_o speak_v somewhat_o more_o unto_o martha_n than_o john_n in_o word_n have_v express_v how_o this_o same_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o call_v himself_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n when_o he_o say_v if_o thou_o do_v believe_v thou_o shall_v see_v his_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o lazarus_n which_o be_v do_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n depend_v upon_o the_o faith_n of_o martha_n but_o he_o seem_v rather_o to_o mean_v thus_o that_o martha_n have_v not_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n if_o so_o be_v
she_o have_v be_v void_a of_o faith_n upon_o just_a cause_n therefore_o he_o say_v not_o if_o thou_o believe_v thy_o brother_n shall_v rise_v again_o but_o thou_o shall_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n c_o and_o that_o not_o only_o because_o faith_n do_v open_v our_o eye_n that_o we_o may_v behold_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n shine_v in_o his_o work_n but_o because_o our_o faith_n make_v away_o for_o the_o power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o offer_v itself_o unto_o we_o as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o the_o four_o score_n and_o one_o psalm_n begin_v at_o the_o eleven_o verse_n so_o again_o unbelief_n stop_v the_o access_n unto_o god_n and_o do_v as_o it_o be_v keep_v his_o hand_n fast_o shut_v for_o the_o which_o cause_n it_o be_v say_v in_o another_o place_n jesus_n can_v show_v no_o sign_n there_o 13.58_o mat._n 13.58_o because_o of_o their_o unbelief_n not_o that_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v tie_v to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o because_o they_o which_o do_v withstand_v the_o same_o by_o their_o wickedness_n so_o much_o as_o they_o can_v be_v unworthy_a to_o have_v he_o reveal_v unto_o they_o m._n he_o say_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n when_o he_o may_v have_v say_v my_o glory_n for_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o son_n also_o shall_v be_v gloryfy_v by_o this_o miracle_n as_o be_v say_v before_o but_o christ_n think_v it_o better_a to_o use_v this_o modesty_n that_o he_o may_v seem_v rather_o to_o seek_v his_o father_n glory_n than_o his_o own_o although_o his_o father_n glory_n and_o he_o be_v always_o join_v together_o 41._o then_o they_o take_v away_o the_o stone_n from_o the_o place_n where_o the_o dead_a be_v lay_v and_o jesus_n lyfte_v up_o his_o eye_n and_o say_v father_n i_o thank_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v hear_v i_o then_o they_o take_v c._n now_o martha_n be_v content_v with_o this_o second_o say_n suffer_v the_o stone_n to_o be_v move_v she_o see_v nothing_o as_o yet_o but_o because_o she_o hear_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v not_o command_v the_o same_o in_o vain_a she_o willing_o obey_v he_o where_o the_o dead_a be_v lay_v m._n the_o evangelist_n think_v that_o he_o can_v not_o sufficient_o inculcate_v the_o death_n of_o lazarus_n that_o thereby_o he_o may_v make_v the_o glory_n o●_n the_o power_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v boath_n the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n the_o more_o manifest_a and_o jesus_n lift_v up_o his_o eye_n christ_n talk_v with_o his_o father_n before_o he_o command_v the_o dead_a man_n and_o that_o he_o may_v declare_v that_o he_o talk_v with_o the_o father_n he_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n towards_o heaven_n bu_n to_o the_o end_n that_o by_o the_o very_a gesture_n of_o his_o body_n he_o may_v declare_v to_o the_o stander_n about_o he_o that_o the_o same_o which_o he_o do_v be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n who_o be_v the_o author_n and_o gever_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n c._n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o a_o good_a mind_n dispose_v to_o pray_v for_o if_o so_o be_v a_o man_n will_v true_o call_v upon_o god_n he_o must_v be_v join_v with_o he_o the_o which_o can_v be_v except_o he_o be_v lyft_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n and_o ascend_v above_o the_o heaven_n the_o which_o a_o man_n can_v do_v by_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n only_o for_o the_o hypocrite_n also_o do_v the_o like_a who_o be_v overwhelm_v in_o the_o fylthynesse_n of_o the_o flesh_n do_v seem_v by_o lift_v up_o of_o their_o eye_n and_o by_o wrthe_v of_o their_o face_n to_o draw_v heaven_n unto_o they_o but_o that_o which_o they_o do_v hipocritical_o the_o child_n of_o god_n must_v do_v sincere_o notwithstanding_o he_o which_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n toward_o heaven_n aught_o by_o his_o cogitation_n to_o include_v god_n there_o who_o be_v in_o every_o place_n fulfil_v both_o heaven_n and_o earth_n but_o because_o man_n mind_n can_v be_v free_a from_o groase_a imagination_n but_o that_o they_o will_v imagine_v some_o groase_n and_o base_a thing_n to_o be_v in_o god_n except_o it_o be_v when_o they_o be_v lyft_v up_o above_o the_o world_n the_o scripture_n call_v we_o thither_o and_o testify_v that_o the_o heaven_n be_v god_n seat_n i_o esay_n 66_o i_o but_o this_o lyft_a up_o of_o the_o eye_n be_v not_o such_o a_o ceremonye_n that_o true_a prayer_n shall_v not_o be_v acceptable_a without_o the_o same_o for_o the_o publican_n no_o doubt_n which_o look_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n do_v nevertheless_o by_o his_o faith_n pierce_v the_o heaven_n and_o yet_o this_o gesture_n be_v profitable_a for_o it_o styr_v up_o man_n to_o seek_v god_n and_o move_v the_o affection_n for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o christ_n when_o he_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n towards_o heaven_n be_v rapte_v thither_o with_o great_a vehemency_n father_n i_o thank_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v hear_v i_o bu_n the_o son_n be_v not_o so_o hear_v of_o the_o father_n as_o we_o be_v hear_v but_o after_o a_o more_o certain_a special_a manner_n for_o the_o father_n hear_v the_o son_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o will_n and_o power_n that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o son_n wyll_v not_o any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o his_o father_n neither_o stand_v he_o in_o need_n of_o any_o other_o foreign_a or_o external_a help_n c._n now_o therefore_o he_o begin_v with_o thankesgeve_a when_o as_o he_o have_v ask_v nothing_o but_o although_o the_o evangelist_n make_v no_o mention_v that_o he_o pray_v yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o first_o make_v his_o petition_n for_o otherwise_o he_o can_v not_o be_v hear_v and_o it_o be_v very_o credible_a that_o among_o those_o groaninge_n of_o the_o which_o the_o evangelist_n speak_v he_o pray_v now_o have_v obtain_v lazarus_n life_n he_o geve_v thanks_n to_o the_o father_n and_o in_o that_o he_o arrogate_v not_o this_o power_n to_o himself_o but_o attribute_v the_o same_o to_o his_o father_n as_o receive_v from_o he_o he_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o father_n for_o to_o frame_v himself_o to_o the_o capacity_n of_o man_n one_o while_o he_o prove_v and_o confirm_v his_o divinitye_n challenge_v unto_o himself_o whatsoever_o belong_v unto_o god_n another_o while_n be_v content_v with_o the_o personne_fw-fr of_o a_o man_n he_o geve_v the_o whole_a glory_n of_o the_o divinitye_n to_o the_o father_n 42._o howbeit_o i_o know_v that_o thou_o hear_v i_o always_o but_o because_o of_o the_o people_n which_o stand_v by_o i_o say_v it_o that_o they_o may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o b._n he_o be_v sure_a already_o that_o his_o father_n will_v at_o his_o request_n restore_v lazarus_n to_o life_n therefore_o that_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o do_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n he_o give_v he_o thanks_n c._n and_o when_o he_o add_v that_o he_o know_v the_o same_o before_o he_o so_o do_v lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o be_v in_o so_o small_a favour_n with_o the_o father_n that_o he_o can_v not_o do_v what_o miracle_n he_o will_v at_o the_o first_o without_o stay_n therefore_o he_o declare_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o consent_n between_o he_o and_o the_o father_n that_o nothing_o be_v deny_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o he_o need_v not_o to_o have_v pray_v see_v he_o do_v that_o thing_n only_o which_o he_o know_v be_v command_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n but_o to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v the_o more_o evident_o appear_v unto_o man_n that_o this_o be_v a_o divine_a work_n in_o deed_n he_o therefore_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n b._n to_o be_v short_a he_o geve_v thanks_n unto_o the_o father_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o people_n testify_v that_o he_o wrought_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o father_n that_o he_o be_v always_o hear_v of_o the_o father_n and_o that_o his_o will_n and_o the_o father_n will_v be_v all_o one_o c._n if_o any_o man_n object_n and_o say_v why_o then_o do_v he_o not_o raise_v up_o all_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a we_o answer_v that_o god_n by_o his_o wisdom_n and_o counsel_n appoint_v so_o many_o miracle_n to_o be_v wrought_v and_o no_o more_o than_o shall_v serve_v for_o the_o approbation_n &_o confirmation_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o may_v believe_v b._n let_v we_o know_v that_o all_o the_o word_n and_o deed_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n belong_v to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v believe_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n they_z which_o stóode_v by_o may_v in_o some_o sort_n know_v the_o father_n and_o yet_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o son_n therefore_o he_o pray_v before_o they_o that_o they_o may_v know_v
they_o do_v believe_v in_o god_n which_o believe_v on_o he_o and_o that_o they_o which_o know_v he_o know_v god_n also_o the_o which_o be_v eternal_a life_n c._n the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o faith_n in_o christ_n rest_v not_o upon_o any_o mortal_a man_n but_o upon_o god_n 17.3_o ihon._n 17.3_o because_o he_o find_v nothing_o in_o christ_n but_o that_o which_o be_v divine_a yea_o in_o his_o face_n he_o behould_v god_n for_o how_o shall_v we_o understande_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o here_o speak_v but_o only_o because_o a_o man_n appear_v unto_o man_n when_o god_n be_v hide_v and_o not_o see_v also_o jest_n they_o shall_v think_v that_o he_o be_v the_o same_o only_o who_o they_o see_v heé_n requier_v to_o be_v beléeve_v to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o and_o of_o so_o great_a majesty_n as_o be_v the_o father_n for_o say_v he_o whosoever_o beléeve_v in_o i_o he_o believe_v not_o in_o i_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o that_o which_o be_v see_v but_o in_o the_o father_n and_o he_o which_o beléeve_v the_o father_n must_v of_o necessity_n believe_v that_o he_o have_v a_o son_n and_o so_o consequentlye_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o father_n must_v also_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n therefore_o he_o do_v truelye_o profit_v in_o the_o gospel_n who_o stay_v himself_o upon_o this_o faith_n do_v believe_v god_n and_o not_o man_n and_o do_v stand_v strong_a and_o steadfast_a against_o all_o the_o assault_n of_o satan_n the_o faithful_a be_v say_v not_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n when_o they_o do_v not_o persist_v in_o the_o human_a behold_n of_o he_o for_o he_o here_o compare_v himself_o with_o the_o father_n command_v we_o to_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o power_n of_o god_n because_o the_o infirmitye_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o itself_o have_v no_o strength_n here_o after_o when_o he_o shall_v exhort_v his_o disciple_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o the_o seence_n shall_v be_v otherwise_o for_o there_o god_n be_v not_o compare_v with_o man_n but_o christ_n be_v reveal_v with_o all_o his_o gift_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o retain_v our_o faith_n 45._o and_o he_o that_o see_v i_o see_v he_o that_o send_v i_o question_n m._n see_v that_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o a_o spirit_n can_v be_v see_v how_o do_v he_o see_v god_n which_o see_v christ_n 9.19_o john_n 4.24_o john_n 1.18_o 1._o tim_n 9.19_o moreover_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n for_o he_o dwell_v in_o the_o light_n that_o no_o man_n can_v attain_v unto_o answer_v answer_v i_o answer_v c._n see_v in_o this_o place_n be_v take_v for_o knowledge_n for_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v well_o and_o thorough_o pacefye_v those_o conscience_n which_o otherwise_o shall_v be_v much_o disquiet_v and_o trouble_v he_o call_v we_o to_o the_o father_n for_o therefore_o the_o stabillitie_n of_o faith_n be_v sure_a and_o firm_a because_o it_o be_v above_o the_o world_n and_o in_o that_o man_n who_o truelye_o know_v christ_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n do_v shine_v that_o we_o may_v be_v assure_v that_o the_o faith_n which_o we_o have_v in_o he_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o man_n but_o upon_o the_o eternal_a god_n because_o it_o arise_v from_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o divinity_n the_o which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o it_o ought_v not_o only_o to_o be_v fix_v continual_o in_o our_o heart_n but_o also_o it_o ought_v bouldelye_o and_o void_a of_o all_o fear_n to_o show_v it_o ●●●fe_n in_o our_o tongue_n so_o often_o as_o need_n requier_v a_o according_a to_o this_o say_n 116.10_o psal_n 116.10_o i_o believe_v and_o therefore_o i_o speak_v 46._o i_o be_o come_v a_o light_n into_o the_o world_n that_o whosoever_o beleve_v on_o i_o shall_v not_o abide_v in_o darkness_n c._n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v make_v his_o disciple_n more_o strong_a and_o valiant_a he_o go_v forward_o still_o in_o preach_v the_o assurance_n of_o faith_n and_o first_o of_o all_o he_o testify_v that_o he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o be_v a_o light_n whereby_o man_n may_v forsake_v darkness_n and_o error_n sin_n and_o death_n &_o condemnation_n to_o the_o which_o all_o man_n be_v subject_a and_o he_o show_v also_o the_o mean_a how_o to_o attain_v so_o notable_a a_o benefit_n say_v that_o whosoever_o believe_v on_o i_o shall_v not_o bu_n for_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v communicate_v unto_o man_n all_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v he_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o be_v incarnate_a but_o he_o geve_v they_o unto_o we_o by_o faith_n wherefore_o by_o faith_n christ_n with_o all_o that_o he_o have_v be_v we_o whereupon_o the_o second_o time_n he_o repeat_v faith_n requier_v his_o disciple_n to_o beeléeve_v in_o he_o c._n also_o he_o accuse_v all_o those_o of_o ingratitude_n who_o be_v instruct_v and_o teach_v by_o his_o gospel_n do_v not_o divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o unbelieved_a for_o the_o more_o notable_a a_o benifyte_n that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v call_v from_o darkness_n into_o light_n the_o less_o excuse_n have_v they_o who_o either_o by_o their_o sloth_n or_o negligence_n choke_v and_o put_v out_o the_o light_n which_o be_v kindele_v in_o they_o therefore_o that_o we_o may_v have_v several_a degree_n first_o of_o all_o christ_n teach_v that_o he_o be_v a_o light_n more_o for_o other_o sake_n than_o for_o his_o own_o secondelye_o that_o he_o be_v a_o light_n not_o only_o to_o angel_n but_o also_o to_o man_n three_o that_o he_o be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n to_o give_v forth_o a_o bright_a shine_n a._n but_o how_o christ_n be_v call_v a_o light_n we_o have_v show_v before_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n the_o fowrth_a verse_n in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n the_o twelve_o verse_n and_o in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n the_o fyfte_a verse_n 47._o and_o if_o any_o man_n hear_v my_o word_n and_o believe_v not_o i_o judge_v he_o not_o for_o i_o come_v not_o to_o judge_v the_o world_n but_o to_o save_v the_o world_n c._n after_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v of_o his_o grace_n and_o exhort_v his_o disciple_n to_o the_o constancy_n of_o faith_n he_o now_o begin_v to_o touch_v the_o rebel_n earnest_o reprehend_v they_o c._n how_o be_v it_o here_o also_o he_o deal_v not_o so_o severe_o with_o they_o as_o their_o wickedness_n deserve_v who_o wilful_o reject_v god_n for_o he_o omit_v to_o judge_v of_o these_o man_n because_o he_o come_v rather_o to_o save_v all_o in_o the_o first_o place_n we_o must_v note_n that_o he_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o every_o unbeléever_n but_o of_o those_o which_o willing_o and_o wylfullye_o reject_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n preach_v unto_o they_o m._n for_o proper_o he_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v unbeléevinge_v which_o have_v not_o hear_v that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o who_o the_o gospel_n have_v not_o be_v preach_v he_o speak_v therefore_o of_o those_o which_o do_v willing_o despise_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n offer_v unto_o they_o c._n wherefore_o then_o will_v not_o christ_n condemn_v they_o because_o he_o hear_v lay_v aund_n for_o a_o time_n the_o parson_n of_o a_o judge_n to_o the_o end_n all_o i_o may_v be_v the_o more_o encourage_v to_o repentance_n offer_v salvation_n general_o to_o all_o and_o spread_v forth_o his_o arm_n to_o embrace_v every_o one_o howbeit_o he_o amplyfi_v the_o crime_n by_o no_o small_a circumstance_n if_o so_o be_v they_o refuse_v so_o gentile_a and_o sweet_a a_o call_n for_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v behold_v i_o stand_v present_a to_o call_v man_n and_o forget_v the_o parsone_n of_o a_o judge_n i_o seek_v to_o draw_v all_o man_n unto_o i_o and_o to_o deliver_v they_o from_o destruction_n which_o have_v be_v twice_o lose_v no_o man_n therefore_o be_v damn_v for_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o he_o which_o despise_v the_o amiable_a message_n of_o salvation_n will_v willing_o bring_v destruction_n to_o himself_o this_o word_n judge_n in_o this_o place_n signify_v to_o condemn_v as_o in_o diverse_a other_o place_n also_o use_v to_o save_v aught_o to_o be_v refer_v only_o to_o the_o proper_a office_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o that_o the_o unbeliever_n be_v more_o grevous_o and_o deep_o condemn_v for_o the_o gospel_n sake_n it_o be_v accentall_a &_o of_o his_o nature_n a._n 3.17_o john_n 3.17_o the_o like_a sentence_n we_o read_v when_o christ_n say_v god_n send_v not_o his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n to_o condemn_v the_o world_n but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v be_v save_v through_o he_o 48._o he_o that_o refuse_v i_o and_o receive_v not_o my_o word_n have_v one_o that_o judge_v he_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v the_o same_o shall_v judge_v he_o in_o the_o last_o day_n c._n lest_o the_o wicked_a may_v persuade_v
keep_v it_o he_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o the_o woman_n have_v say_v bless_a be_v the_o womb_n that_o bear_v thou_o and_o the_o pap_n that_o give_v thou_o suck_v but_o extoll_v those_o which_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o keep_v it_o c._n therefore_o christ_n here_o for_o this_o consideration_n commend_v faith_n because_o the_o same_o be_v content_a with_o the_o simple_a word_n of_o god_n depend_v not_o upon_o the_o sense_n and_o reason_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n so_o that_o he_o comprehend_v the_o force_n and_o nature_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o brief_a definition_n namely_o that_o it_o stand_v not_o in_o the_o present_a aspect_n but_o pierce_v unto_o the_o heaven_n and_o believe_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v hide_v from_o human_a understanding_n to_o this_o effect_n pertain_v these_o sentence_n faith_n be_v a_o assurance_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v hope_v for_o 5.7_o heb._n 11.11_o 1._o cor._n 5.7_o and_o a_o certainty_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v aso_n we_o walk_v by_o faith_n not_o after_o outward_a appearance_n the_o which_o place_n signify_v that_o faith_n have_v his_o aspect_n but_o yet_o such_o aspect_n as_o stay_v not_o on_o the_o world_n and_o upon_o earthly_a object_n if_o any_o man_n object_n and_o say_v that_o this_o place_n be_v contrary_a to_o that_o where_o he_o pronounce_v those_o eye_n to_o be_v bless_v which_o behold_v he_o present_v we_o answer_v 13.16_o mat._n 13.16_o that_o christ_n do_v not_o speak_v there_o of_o a_o corporal_a aspect_n only_o as_o he_o do_v in_o this_o place_n but_o of_o the_o revelation_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o godly_a from_o the_o time_n that_o he_o come_v to_o be_v the_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n he_o compare_v the_o apostle_n with_o the_o holy_a king_n &_o prophet_n which_o be_v hold_v under_o the_o obscure_a shadow_n of_o moses_n law_n but_o now_o he_o say_v that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v bless_v because_o more_o perfect_v light_o shine_v unto_o they_o yea_o because_o the_o substance_n and_o truth_n of_o figure_n be_v offer_v unto_o they_o many_o of_o the_o wicked_a behold_v chryste_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o flesh_n at_o that_o time_n who_o notwithstanding_o be_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o bless_a but_o we_o which_o never_o see_v christ_n with_o our_o eye_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o this_o blessedness_n which_o christ_n here_o commend_v 3.1_o blessedness_n of_o those_o that_o see_v not_o christ_n gal._n 3.1_o whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o those_o eye_n be_v call_v bless_v which_o spiritual_o consider_v that_o in_o he_o which_o be_v heavenly_a and_o divine_a for_o at_o this_o day_n we_o behold_v christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n no_o less_o than_o if_o he_o be_v present_a before_o us._n m._n therefore_o let_v no_o man_n say_v o_o that_o i_o have_v live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v see_v with_o my_o eye_n those_o his_o miracle_n we_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v much_o more_o bless_v which_o see_v not_o than_o those_o which_o have_v see_v 1.8_o 1._o pet._n 1.8_o c._n if_o therefore_o we_o desire_v to_o see_v that_o in_o christ_n which_o make_v we_o happy_a and_o bless_a let_v we_o learn_v to_o believe_v when_o we_o see_v not_o whereas_o therefore_o the_o papist_n wrest_v these_o word_n to_o prove_v their_o transubstantiation_n it_o be_v too_o frivolous_a and_o vain_a that_o we_o may_v be_v bless_v they_o command_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n but_o the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n be_v nothing_o less_o than_o to_o make_v our_o faith_n subject_a to_o the_o invention_n of_o man_n the_o which_o faith_n if_o it_o pass_v never_o so_o little_a the_o bound_n of_o the_o word_n it_o cease_v now_o to_o be_v faith_n if_o so_o be_v we_o must_v believe_v general_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v than_o our_o faith_n shall_v be_v subject_a to_o all_o monstruous_a miracle_n to_o all_o fable_n and_o forge_a lie_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n this_o sentence_n of_o christ_n may_v take_v place_n we_o must_v first_o of_o all_o prove_v that_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o the_o which_o we_o do_v doubt_n the_o papist_n bring_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o their_o transubstantiation_n but_o false_a expound_v and_o unapt_o allege_v bu_n let_v we_o therefore_o keep_v ourselves_o within_o our_o prescript_n bound_n and_o let_v we_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v our_o lord_n our_o life_n and_o our_o resurrection_n in_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v rise_v again_o from_o death_n 30._o and_o many_o other_o sign_n true_o do_v jesus_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o disciple_n which_o be_v not_o write_v in_o this_o book_n m._n when_o the_o evangelist_n do_v write_v these_o thing_n many_o other_o sign_n also_o concern_v the_o lord_n resurrection_n come_v unto_o his_o mind_n the_o which_o he_o may_v have_v put_v in_o write_v aswell_o as_o these_o but_o because_o he_o have_v already_o determine_v with_o himself_o concern_v the_o quantity_n of_o his_o book_n and_o be_v already_o come_v to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o same_o lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o have_v write_v all_o the_o sign_n which_o christ_n do_v after_o his_o resurrection_n &_o that_o the_o lord_n appear_v not_o pass_v once_o or_o twice_o to_o his_o disciple_n to_o confirm_v his_o resurrection_n he_o think_v good_a to_o add_v these_o thing_n unto_o his_o narration_n c._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v let_v no_o man_n think_v that_o he_o have_v here_o a_o full_a and_o perfect_a history_n bu_n for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v declare_v by_o many_o other_o argument_n sign_n token_n and_o demonstration_n the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o of_o his_o divine_a power_n and_o that_o so_o evident_o that_o the_o disciple_n may_v not_o only_o understand_v the_o same_o but_o also_o may_v see_v with_o their_o eye_n &_o touch_v with_o their_o hand_n the_o lord_n jesus_n restore_v to_o life_n &_o may_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o from_o death_n but_o all_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o not_o particular_o repeat_v in_o this_o my_o euangelical_n work_n 10.41_o act._n 10.41_o not_o that_o they_o be_v unworthy_a to_o be_v remember_v but_o because_o these_o thing_n be_v sufficient_a to_o the_o edification_n of_o faith_n 31._o these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o in_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n through_o his_o name_n bu_n here_o the_o evangelist_n add_v the_o cause_n and_o end_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v hitherto_o declare_v to_o the_o end_n the_o reader_n may_v know_v how_o to_o profit_v in_o read_v these_o thing_n say_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o this_o jesus_n of_o who_o i_o testify_v that_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o who_o by_o so_o many_o sign_n declare_v to_o his_o disciple_n after_o his_o death_n that_o he_o be_v rise_v to_o life_n be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o messiah_n &_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n who_o the_o father_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n send_v into_o this_o world_n to_o be_v a_o saviour_n and_o mediator_n c._n therefore_o by_o these_o word_n he_o geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o he_o have_v put_v in_o write_v so_o much_o as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v we_o because_o the_o same_o be_v sufficient_a enough_o for_o the_o confyrmation_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o he_o mind_v to_o prevente_v the_o vain_a curiosity_n of_o man_n which_o be_v seldom_o or_o never_o satisfy_v also_o saint_n john_n be_v not_o ignorant_a what_o the_o other_o evangelist_n have_v write_v but_o see_v he_o intend_v nothing_o less_o than_o to_o abolishe_v their_o writing_n he_o do_v not_o sepadate_n their_o narration_n from_o he_o say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o we_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n c._n notwithstanding_o it_o seem_v absurd_a that_o faith_n shall_v be_v ground_v upon_o miracle_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v whole_o tie_v to_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o word_n answer_n miracle_n be_v appoint_v here_o to_o serve_v for_o no_o other_o use_n than_o to_o be_v help_n and_o stay_v of_o faith_n for_o they_o serve_v to_o prepare_v man_n mind_n that_o they_o may_v geve_v more_o reverence_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n faith_n miracle_n confirm_v our_o faith_n r._n therefore_o miracle_n do_v confirm_v a_o man_n faith_n but_o they_o geve_v not_o faith_n for_o they_o which_o believe_v not_o by_o the_o word_n bot_n miracle_n do_v fall_v away_o in_o time_n of_o temptation_n that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n bu_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o messiah_n promise_v in_o the_o law_n and_o in_o the_o
prophet_n perfect_v god_n and_o perfect_v man_n the_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n the_o high_a legate_n of_o the_o father_n the_o only_a author_n of_o perfect_a felicity_n bu_n who_o by_o his_o death_n have_v put_v away_o death_n and_o by_o his_o resurrection_n have_v restore_v to_o life_n the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o among_o man_n there_o be_v none_o find_v meet_a to_o bring_v such_o notable_a matter_n to_o pass_v as_o to_o reconcile_v we_o to_o the_o father_n to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o sin_n to_o destroy_v death_n to_o overthrow_v the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n and_o to_o bring_v unto_o we_o true_a righteousness_n and_o salvation_n therefore_o god_n send_v and_o give_v unto_o we_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n a._n for_o all_o be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n all_o be_v beoome_n unprofitable_a 3.12_o psal_n 14.3_o rom._n 3.12_o there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o c._n moreover_o see_v the_o name_n of_o son_n do_v belong_v unto_o christ_n only_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o son_n by_o adoption_n but_o by_o nature_n wherefore_o in_o this_o name_n the_o eternal_a divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v contain_v m._n read_v more_o hereof_o in_o our_o annotation_n upon_o the_o .16_o verse_n of_o the_o .16_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n and_o that_o in_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n bu_n now_o saint_n john_n add_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n to_o restrain_v the_o desire_n of_o man_n lest_o they_o shall_v desire_v to_o know_v more_o than_o be_v sufficient_a to_o obtain_v life_n for_o what_o wickedness_n be_v this_o not_o to_o be_v content_v with_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o to_o seek_v to_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n m._n the_o end_n of_o the_o scripture_n concern_v jesus_n be_v faith_n in_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o end_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v everlasting_a life_n bu_n for_o both_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n also_o say_v 1.9_o haba_n 2.4_o rom._n 1.17_o gal._n 3.11_o 1._o pet._n 1.9_o that_o the_o just_a man_n shall_v live_v by_o faith_n concern_v our_o restore_n to_o life_n by_o christ_n read_v our_o annotation_n upon_o the_o three_o chapter_n before_o the_o 16._o verse_n through_o his_o name_n bu_n he_o add_v this_o to_o declare_v that_o we_o have_v life_n by_o the_o merit_n and_o virtue_n of_o chryste_n for_o in_o show_v that_o our_o righteousness_n come_v hy_z the_o grace_n of_o chryste_n he_o exclude_v all_o man_n merit_n m._n therefore_o we_o have_v life_n by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v through_o christ_n for_o christ_n in_o christ_n &_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n because_o we_o be_v christ_n and_o do_v apperteine_a to_o his_o name_n if_o so_o be_v we_o believe_v in_o he_o for_o we_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o of_o the_o father_n a._n also_o there_o be_v many_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o testify_v that_o we_o have_v life_n give_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n jesus_n only_o 2.12_o act._n 4.12_o act._n 10.43_o 1._o ihon._n 2.12_o such_o be_v these_o which_o i_o have_v quote_v in_o the_o margin_n the_o xxj_o chapter_n 1_o afterward_o do_v jesus_n show_v himself_o again_o to_o his_o disciple_n at_o the_o sea_n of_o tyberias_fw-la and_o on_o this_o wise_a show_v he_o himself_o bu_n some_o think_v that_o this_o chapter_n be_v not_o add_v by_o john_n but_o by_o some_o other_o because_o saint_n john_n conclude_v his_o history_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o twenty_o chapter_n but_o they_o see_v not_o that_o in_o the_o twentieth_o chapter_n those_o argument_n only_o be_v speak_v of_o by_o which_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v manifest_v at_o jerusalem_n &_o that_o in_o this_o one_o &_o twentieth_o chapter_n those_o thing_n be_v name_v 26.32_o mat._n 26.32_o by_o which_o he_o approve_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n in_o galilee_n therefore_o of_o the_o twentieth_o chapter_n he_o conclude_v the_o narration_n of_o those_o sign_n which_o be_v show_v at_o jerusalem_n but_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v special_o promise_v that_o straight_o after_o his_o resurrcection_n he_o will_v go_v into_o galilee_n and_o there_o show_v himself_o alyve_a again_o unto_o his_o disciple_n s._n john_n lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o omit_v any_o thing_n which_o appertain_v to_o a_o full_a and_o perfect_v history_n have_v in_o this_o chapter_n add_v the_o revelation_n of_o the_o resurrection_n make_v in_o galilee_n m._n but_o when_o this_o apparition_n be_v make_v we_o can_v sertayne_o tell_v for_o that_o the_o euangeliste_n speak_v not_o of_o any_o time_n it_o be_v most_o sertayne_v that_o the_o apostle_n according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n left_a jerusalem_n and_o come_v to_o galilee_n after_o the_o eight_o day_n of_o his_o resurrection_n wherein_o we_o have_v to_o note_v the_o diligence_n of_o christ_n who_o seek_v to_o confirm_v his_o disciple_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o resurrection_n if_o so_o be_v he_o have_v seek_v only_o to_o have_v make_v they_o believe_v his_o resurrection_n he_o have_v do_v that_o out_o of_o hand_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o same_o neither_o be_v it_o need_v full_a to_o use_v many_o sign_n and_o apparition_n for_o that_o cause_n but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a once_o only_o too_o know_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o resurrection_n except_o they_o do_v percist_n in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o same_o by_o invincible_a constancy_n it_o be_v necessary_a too_o instruct_v and_o confirm_v they_o by_o many_o sign_n by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o day_n so_o also_o we_o have_v need_n to_o be_v strengthen_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o truth_n which_o we_o have_v once_o receyve_v therefore_o christ_n have_v so_o order_v his_o church_n that_o we_o may_v not_o only_o be_v illumine_v but_o also_o confirm_v even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o word_n by_o sacrament_n and_o by_o the_o often_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2._o there_o be_v together_o simon_n peter_n and_o thomas_n which_o be_v call_v didimus_n etc._n etc._n c._n saynct_v john_n declare_v that_o christ_n appear_v to_o seven_o of_o his_o disciple_n among_o who_o he_o recken_v thomas_n not_o for_o estimation_n sake_n so_o much_o as_o that_o we_o may_v the_o soon_o believe_v by_o his_o testimony_n m._n simon_n peter_n be_v of_o bethsaida_n a_o city_n of_o galilee_n border_v upon_o the_o sea_n which_o in_o other_o place_n be_v call_v the_o lake_n of_o genazareth_n but_o here_o the_o sea_n of_o tiberias_n this_o peter_n &_o the_o rest_n s._n john_n name_v as_o witnese_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n &_o sertainety_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n 3._o simon_n peter_n say_v unto_o they_o i_o go_v a_o fish_n they_o say_v unto_o he_o we_o also_o will_v go_v with_o thou_o they_o go_v their_o way_n &_o enter_v into_o a_o ship_n immediate_o and_o that_o night_n catch_v they_o nothing_o bu_n here_o first_o be_v set_v down_o the_o occasion_n by_o which_o the_o manifestation_n be_v make_v for_o when_o simon_n peter_n be_v come_v into_o his_o own_o country_n with_o his_o disciple_n lest_o he_o shall_v be_v idle_a and_o live_v upon_o other_o man_n cost_n and_o charge_n go_v a_o fysh_a and_o take_v with_o he_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o disciple_n c._n and_o this_o travail_n of_o peter_n in_o fysh_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v unséemely_a &_o unméete_a for_o his_o office_n he_o be_v only_o ordain_v a_o apostle_n by_o breathe_v as_o yet_o as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o in_o the_o twenty_o chapter_n but_o he_o cease_v for_o a_o little_a while_n until_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o new_a power_n for_o he_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o command_v to_o go_v forth_o to_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o teach_v but_o be_v only_o admonish_v of_o his_o calling_n to_o come_v that_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n may_v know_v that_o they_o be_v not_o choose_v from_o the_o begin_n in_o vain_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o do_v that_o which_o they_o be_v accustom_v to_o do_v and_o which_o become_v private_a man_n until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v call_v of_o the_o lord_n to_o do_v other_o business_n the_o apostle_n paul_n even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o race_n of_o preach_v get_v his_o live_n with_o his_o hand_n but_o he_o have_v another_o consideration_n for_o so_o the_o time_n give_v he_o leave_v least_o handy_a labour_n may_v draw_v he_o away_o from_o teach_v but_o peter_n and_o his_o fellow_n because_o they_o be_v free_a from_o all_o public_a function_n give_v themselves_o whole_o unto_o fish_v bu_n therefore_o herein_o labour_n be_v commend_v to_o we_o all_o and_o idleness_n condemn_v and_o that_o night_n catch_v they_o nothing_o m._n in_o that_o they_o take_v nothing_o it_o
to_o come_v the_o which_o life_n the_o elect_a have_v from_o he_o of_o the_o which_o christ_n himself_o oftentimes_o speak_v say_v i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n 6._o john_n 6._o which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n if_o any_o man_n eat_v of_o this_o bread_n he_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o again_o 11._o john_n 11._o i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o though_o he_o be_v dead_a yet_o shall_v he_o live_v also_o he_o say_v i_o be_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n 14._o john_n 14._o in_o this_o sense_n also_o our_o evangelist_n saint_n john_n call_v he_o in_o his_o epistle_n 1._o 1._o john_n 1._o the_o word_n of_o life_n therefore_o so_o many_o as_o be_v not_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v deprive_v of_o the_o true_a and_o everlasting_a life_n for_o without_o that_o everlasting_a purpose_n and_o word_n of_o god_n no_o man_n can_v have_v eternal_a life_n the_o which_o saint_n john_n note_v by_o these_o word_n in_o another_o place_n say_v he_o that_o have_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 5_o 1._o epist_n 5_o have_v life_n and_o he_o that_o have_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v not_o life_n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o attribute_v not_o so_o the_o power_n of_o quicken_a to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o we_o take_v away_o the_o same_o from_o the_o father_n for_o as_o the_o father_n raise_v up_o the_o dead_a and_o make_v alive_a 5._o john_n 5._o even_o so_o the_o son_n also_o quicken_v who_o he_o will_n and_o in_o another_o place_n s._n john_n say_v 1._o 1._o epist_n 1._o and_o the_o life_n be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o again_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o 5._o john_n 5._o so_o have_v he_o give_v to_o the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v not_o two_o well_n of_o life_n even_o as_o there_o be_v not_o two_o creator_n nor_o two_o go_n the_o father_n quicken_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o word_n even_o by_o it_o he_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n do_v as_o make_v all_o thing_n and_o preserve_v they_o be_v make_v and_o the_o life_n be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n aug._n by_o the_o light_a man_n be_v lighten_v but_o beast_n be_v not_o lighten_v thereby_o because_o they_o have_v not_o mind_n capable_a of_o reason_n and_o wisdom_n but_o man_n which_o be_v make_v after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n have_v a_o reasonable_a mind_n by_o the_o which_o he_o can_v perceyve_v and_o understand_v wisdom_n therefore_o that_o life_n by_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v be_v the_o light_n and_o not_o of_o all_o creature_n but_o of_o man_n only_o m._n so_o that_o the_o evangelist_n mean_v not_o that_o light_n by_o this_o word_n light_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o son_n and_o do_v lighten_v the_o eye_n of_o our_o body_n but_o he_o mean_v that_o light_n by_o the_o which_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o mind_n be_v illuminate_v to_o know_v god_n and_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o that_o part_n of_o life_n by_o the_o which_o man_n excel_v all_o other_o live_v creature_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o not_o a_o common_a kind_n of_o life_n be_v give_v unto_o man_n but_o such_o a_o life_n as_o be_v join_v with_o the_o light_n of_o understanding_n and_o he_o separate_v man_n from_o the_o number_n of_o all_o other_o creature_n because_o we_o perceive_v better_o the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o we_o by_o sense_n than_o we_o behold_v the_o same_o a_o far_o of_o so_o saint_n paul_n teach_v that_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v a_o far_o of_o 17._o act_n 17._o because_o he_o reveal_v himself_o inward_o in_o us._n after_o therefore_o the_o evangelist_n have_v set_v before_o we_o the_o general_a consideration_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v man_n to_o a_o more_o near_a consideration_n thereof_o he_o show_v what_o be_v special_o give_v unto_o they_o name_o that_o they_o be_v not_o in_o creation_n like_a unto_o brute_n beast_n but_o be_v set_v in_o a_o more_o high_a degree_n have_v a_o mind_n endue_v with_o reason_n and_o capable_a of_o wisdom_n that_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o this_o wisdom_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o very_a well_o of_o life_n so_o say_v the_o prophet_n david_n 36._o psal_n 36._o with_o thou_o be_v the_o well_o of_o life_n and_o in_o thy_o light_n shall_v we_o see_v light_n 5._o and_o the_o light_n shine_v in_o darkness_n and_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v it_o not_o and_o the_o light_n shine_v in_o darkness_n a._n here_o the_o evangelist_n begin_v to_o note_v man_n of_o ingratitude_n and_o blindness_n because_o by_o their_o wickedness_n they_o reject_v this_o light_n offer_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o we_o may_v understand_v this_o thing_n we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o evangelist_n first_o of_o all_o admonish_v that_o the_o light_n with_o the_o which_o man_n be_v endue_v in_o the_o beginning_n must_v not_o be_v judge_v according_a to_o their_o present_a state_n because_o in_o this_o corrupt_a and_o defile_v nature_n the_o light_n be_v turn_v into_o darkness_n notwithstanding_o he_o therewith_o affirm_v that_o the_o light_n of_o understanding_n be_v not_o clean_o put_v out_o because_o in_o the_o obscure_a darkness_n of_o man_n mind_n certain_a spark_n of_o light_a as_o yet_o do_v spring_n up_o m._n the_o evangelist_n therefore_o excuse_v the_o divinitye_n and_o majesty_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o same_o have_v ever_o shine_v unto_o mortal_a man_n as_o a_o certain_a most_o evident_a and_o manifest_a light_n and_o he_o lay_v all_o the_o blame_n of_o the_o ignorance_n of_o god_n on_o the_o blindness_n of_o man_n c._n for_o in_o that_o he_o affirm_v the_o light_n to_o shine_v in_o darkness_n that_o pertain_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o the_o praise_n of_o corrupt_a nature_n but_o rather_o to_o the_o take_v away_o of_o the_o pretence_a cloak_n of_o ignorance_n m._n for_o this_o light_n shine_v in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o mind_n of_o mortal_a man_n may_v by_o the_o same_o have_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o live_n of_o god_n have_v not_o their_o mind_n be_v overwhelm_v with_o darkness_n for_o he_o call_v here_o the_o blindness_n of_o man_n mind_n unbeléefe_n impiety_n and_o the_o ignorance_n of_o god_n darkness_n for_o as_o the_o eye_n that_o be_v blind_a can_v not_o comprehend_v the_o light_n even_o so_o the_o mind_n that_o be_v blind_v can_v comprehend_v the_o light_n of_o life_n a._n and_o as_o the_o light_n be_v present_a to_o the_o blind_a man_n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o be_v absent_a from_o his_o eye_n even_o so_o the_o light_n of_o life_n be_v present_a to_o mortal_a man_n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o their_o mind_n be_v oppress_v with_o darkness_n can_v not_o attain_v c._n for_o since_o the_o time_n that_o man_n be_v alienate_v and_o fall_v from_o god_n ignorance_n have_v so_o captive_v his_o mind_n that_o what_o light_n so_o ever_o remain_v in_o the_o same_o lie_v suffocate_v and_o choke_v without_o effect_n and_o this_o thing_n experience_n daily_o prove_v for_o they_o which_o be_v not_o bear_v again_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v some_o reason_n stand_v for_o a_o certain_a document_n that_o man_n be_v not_o only_o make_v to_o breathe_v but_o also_o to_o understande_v but_o there_o be_v two_o special_a part_n of_o the_o light_n which_o remain_v as_o yet_o in_o the_o corrupt_a nature_n of_o man_n for_o there_o be_v natural_o ingraft_v in_o all_o man_n a_o certain_a sound_a seed_n of_o religion_n or_o godliness_n furthermore_o a_o difference_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n be_v engrave_v in_o their_o conscience_n but_o what_o fruit_n at_o the_o length_n come_v forth_o sure_o that_o religion_n &_o godliness_n which_o do_v degenerate_a into_o a_o thousand_o monstrous_a superstition_n and_o that_o conscience_n which_o do_v altogether_o pervert_v judgement_n that_o it_o may_v confound_v vice_n with_o virtue_n to_o conclude_v the_o natural_a reason_n which_o be_v in_o man_n do_v never_o direct_a man_n unto_o christ_n but_o we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o evangelist_n speak_v only_o of_o natural_a gift_n &_o that_o he_o do_v not_o as_o yet_o touch_v the_o grace_n of_o regeneration_n for_o there_o be_v two_o distinct_a virtue_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o first_o be_v that_o which_o appear_v in_o the_o make_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n the_o second_o appear_v in_o the_o renew_v and_o repair_v of_o the_o decay_a and_o defile_v nature_n of_o man_n 6._o there_o be_v a_o man_n send_v from_o god_n who_o name_n be_v john_n there_o be_v a_o man_n send_v from_o god._n c._n now_o the_o evangelist_n begin_v to_o show_v how_o
to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o incredulity_n and_o impiety_n of_o the_o israelite_n but_o this_o john_n come_v to_o testify_v of_o the_o light_n christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o come_v to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v show_v the_o rise_n of_o this_o light_n and_o may_v be_v the_o foreronner_fw-fr and_o setter_n forth_o of_o the_o same_o to_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n for_o he_o who_o the_o prophet_n foreshow_v shall_v come_v john_n the_o baptist_n point_v out_o with_o the_o finger_n that_o all_o man_n through_o he_o may_v believe_v m._n he_o say_v not_o simple_o that_o all_o man_n may_v believe_v but_o he_o add_v throw_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o all_o man_n be_v move_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o john_n and_o beléeve_v his_o testimony_n may_v know_v this_o light_n and_o embrace_v the_o same_o it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o that_o such_o a_o witness_n shall_v be_v send_v as_o the_o israelite_n may_v geve_v credit_n unto_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o be_v so_o endue_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o he_o make_v all_o man_n to_o behold_v he_o he_o be_v say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n speak_v of_o john_n 1_o ihon._n 5_o math._n 3_o math._n 11_o mat._n 1_o luk._n 1_o a_o burn_a and_o shine_a light_n for_o all_o jerusalem_n go_v out_o to_o he_o he_o neither_o eat_v bread_n nor_o drink_v wine_n his_o meat_n be_v locust_n and_o wild_a honey_n his_o apparel_n of_o camelle_n here_o and_o a_o girdle_n of_o a_o skin_n about_o his_o loin_n he_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o helias_n he_o call_v all_o man_n with_o severity_n to_o repentance_n spare_v neither_o the_o high_a priest_n scribes_z 3_o luke_n 3_o nor_o pharisee_n who_o he_o call_v generation_n of_o viper_n he_o deal_v severelye_o with_o herode_fw-la the_o king_n 14._o math._n 14._o as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o mathewe_n therefore_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n tend_v to_o this_o end_n which_o he_o bear_v of_o christ_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o he_o faith_n be_v that_o by_o the_o which_o we_o behold_v this_o light_n know_v the_o same_o and_o embrace_v it_o by_o this_o grace_n be_v set_v forth_o to_o the_o world_n not_o only_o the_o testimony_n which_o john_n bear_v concern_v christ_n but_o also_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n both_o by_o voice_n and_o writing_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o gospel_n these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesu_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o what_o be_v the_o profit_n of_o this_o faith_n the_o profit_n say_v he_o of_o this_o faith_n be_v that_o you_o beléeve_a might_n have_v life_n through_o his_o name_n moreover_o the_o grace_n of_o this_o light_n 2_o 1._o tim._n 2_o must_v be_v set_v before_o all_o man_n for_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o the_o truth_n also_o it_o be_v sad_a 3_o luke_n 3_o preach_v you_o the_o gospel_n to_o everye_o creature_n etc._n etc._n b._n whereupon_o saint_n john_n baptist_n preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o soldier_n and_o publican_n 8._o he_o be_v not_o that_o light_n but_o be_v send_v to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o light_n he_o be_v not_o that_o light_n b._n by_o this_o new_a preach_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n many_o thought_n that_o this_o john_n be_v the_o same_o light_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v common_o talk_v of_o &_o the_o same_o word_n also_o by_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v but_o the_o evangelist_n say_v he_o be_v not_o the_o same_o light_n m._n for_o we_o read_v that_o he_o have_v so_o great_a authority_n a-among_a the_o israelite_n that_o they_o say_v among_o themselves_o be_v not_o this_o christ_n lest_o therefore_o his_o exceed_a brightness_n shall_v obscure_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n 3_o luke_n 3_o the_o evangelist_n teach_v that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o light_n m._n he_o be_v the_o light_n truelye_o but_o not_o the_o same_o light_n whereof_o it_o be_v here_o speak_v which_o be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n the_o well_o of_o all_o light_n the_o word_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n also_o be_v call_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n 5_o math._n 5_o and_o paul_n call_v the_o beléeve_v in_o christ_n the_o light_n you_o be_v sometime_o say_v he_o darkness_n but_o now_o be_v you_o light_v in_o the_o lord_n 5._o ephe._n 5._o but_o they_o be_v so_o call_v in_o another_o manner_n of_o respect_n c._n for_o all_o the_o godly_a be_v call_v light_n in_o the_o lord_n because_o they_o be_v lighten_v with_o his_o spirit_n do_v not_o only_o see_v to_o themselves_o but_o also_o do_v direct_v other_o by_o their_o example_n into_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n the_o apostle_n also_o be_v special_o call_v the_o light_n because_o they_o prefer_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o drive_v away_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o evangelist_n here_o intreat_v of_o the_o only_a and_o everlasting_a well_o of_o light_n m._n john_n therefore_o be_v a_o light_n but_o he_o be_v set_v on_o fire_n and_o illuminate_v by_o this_o light_n for_o as_o the_o mountain_n in_o the_o morning_n before_o the_o sun_n appear_v unto_o man_n be_v lighten_v with_o his_o beam_n even_o so_o be_v all_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n light_n in_o the_o lord_n of_o who_o they_o be_v illuminate_v r._n wherefore_o this_o place_n put_v a_o difference_n not_o only_o between_o christ_n and_o john_n but_o also_o between_o christ_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n and_o martyr_n for_o neither_o john_n nor_o any_o other_o of_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v the_o true_a light_n but_o be_v only_a proclaimer_n and_o setter_n forth_o of_o the_o true_a light_n m._n let_v we_o therefore_o hereby_o learn_v to_o esteem_v of_o the_o saint_n as_o they_o be_v make_v and_o appoint_v of_o god_n and_o no_o otherwise_o but_o be_v send_v to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o light_n a._n john_n therefore_o repeat_v this_o again_o to_o show_v what_o man_n ought_v to_o judge_v of_o they_o which_o be_v send_v of_o god_n preach_v the_o word_n unto_o the_o world_n lest_o we_o attribute_v any_o thing_n of_o that_o unto_o they_o which_o pertain_v only_o to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n m._n for_o great_a be_v the_o wilful_a folly_n of_o the_o world_n in_o this_o point_n either_o it_o reject_v altogether_o the_o witness_n of_o christ_n and_o despise_v they_o or_o else_o it_o geve_v reverence_n and_o honour_v they_o above_o christ_n the_o jew_n at_o the_o first_o receyve_v john_n for_o the_o messiah_n christ_n himself_o which_o be_v not_o christ_n &_o yet_o they_o receyve_v not_o the_o testimony_n which_o he_o bear_v unto_o christ_n even_o so_o the_o corinthian_n little_a or_o nothing_o at_o all_o regard_v paul_n that_o singular_a preacher_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o make_v more_o of_o the_o false_a apostle_n than_o appertain_v to_o the_o mynister_n of_o of_o christ_n 4_o 1._o cor._n 4_o insomuch_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v fain_o to_o show_v they_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o think_v of_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o what_o not_o and_o we_o ourselves_o have_v have_v experience_n what_o great_a estimation_n the_o world_n have_v have_v and_o yet_o have_v of_o dead_a saint_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o and_o how_o little_a it_o regard_v the_o true_a minister_n of_o christ_n 9_o he_o be_v the_o true_a light_n lighten_v everye_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o be_v the_o true_a light_n c._n the_o true_a light_n be_v not_o here_o oppose_v or_o compare_v to_o the_o false_a light_n but_o the_o evangelist_n here_o go_v about_o to_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o all_o other_o lest_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o be_v even_o the_o same_o light_n &_o no_o better_a than_o the_o which_o angel_n &_o man_n be_v say_v to_o be_v but_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v bright_a and_o shine_a in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n it_o borrow_v his_o brightness_n from_o another_o but_o christ_n be_v light_a of_o himself_o and_o shine_v by_o himself_o and_o lighten_v with_o his_o brightness_n the_o whole_a world_n insomuche_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o cause_n or_o original_a of_o brightness_n but_o he_o he_o call_v therefore_o that_o the_o true_a light_n to_o who_o nature_n it_o be_v proper_a to_o shine_v m._n therefore_o this_o be_v the_o first_o note_n by_o the_o which_o christ_n be_v discern_v from_o john_n and_o from_o all_o other_o apostle_n for_o john_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v light_a as_o it_o be_v say_v before_o but_o not_o the_o true_a light_n that_o be_v to_o
of_o earthly_a thing_n and_o can_v desire_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v against_o god._n but_o christ_n be_v here_o set_v before_o we_o as_o the_o only_a reméedy_a against_o that_o mortal_a sting_n of_o the_o serpent_n who_o be_v therefore_o call_v the_o serpent_n because_o he_o be_v like_a unto_o sinful_a man_n 7.26_o heb._n 7.26_o and_o he_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o serpent_n of_o brass_n because_o he_o be_v pure_a and_o cleanse_v from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o sin_n holy_a innocent_a and_o undefiled_a 2.7_o 1._o pet._n 2.7_o also_o he_o be_v call_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n because_o he_o be_v firm_a and_o a_o sure_a rock_n of_o defence_n for_o all_o such_o as_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o 15._o that_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v life_n everlasting_a m._n thus_o the_o truth_n agree_v with_o the_o figure_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v not_o exalt_v without_o cause_n neither_o for_o itself_o but_o for_o the_o heal_n of_o those_o which_o otherwise_o have_v be_v but_o dead_a even_o so_o christ_n be_v exalt_v by_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n 2.3_o ephe._n 2.3_o that_o we_o which_o be_v bear_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n may_v be_v cure_v so_o that_o we_o behold_v he_o which_o be_v the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n 12.2_o heb_fw-mi 12.2_o whereupon_o also_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o have_v cleanse_v and_o purify_v his_o church_n 5.26_o ephe._n 5.26_o in_o the_o word_n of_o life_n for_o as_o they_o which_o behold_v the_o serpent_n lift_v uppe_o be_v heal_v from_o perish_v and_o restoor_v to_o life_n even_o so_o they_o which_o believe_v in_o christ_n preach_v shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v eternal_a life_n m._n the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v a_o remeedye_a only_o against_o corporal_a and_o temporal_a death_n but_o christ_n be_v a_o remeedye_a against_o eternal_a and_o spiritual_a death_n c._n this_o certain_o be_v a_o notable_a report_n of_o faith_n destruction_n faith_n deliver_v from_o eternal_a destruction_n that_o it_o be_v say_v to_o deliver_v we_o from_o everlasting_a death_n and_o destruction_n for_o christ_n go_v plainelye_o about_o to_o express_v and_o declare_v that_o although_o we_o seem_v to_o be_v bear_v to_o death_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o have_v most_o certain_a deliveraunce_n from_o the_o same_o offer_v to_o we_o through_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o thus_o death_n life_n our_o meri●s_n obtain_v not_o eternal_a life_n which_o otherwise_o hang_v over_o we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v furthermore_o if_o eternal_a life_n be_v obtain_v by_o faith_n where_o be_v then_o our_o merit_n where_o be_v our_o work_n who_o can_v attain_v to_o righteousness_n by_o his_o work_n &_o to_o everlasting_a life_n by_o his_o merit_n c._o also_o christ_n use_v the_o general_a word_n all_n both_o to_o call_v all_o man_n to_o the_o participation_n of_o life_n and_o also_o to_o cut_v of_o all_o excuse_n from_o unbeléever_n m._n therefore_o christ_n jesus_n be_v ready_o to_o bestow_v eternal_a life_n upon_o all_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o without_o respect_n of_o personne_n for_o lovinglye_o he_o call_v all_o unto_o he_o bu_n old_a man_n young_a man_n woman_n learned_a unlearned_a poor_a rich_a jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o to_o be_v short_a he_o call_v all_o kind_n of_o man_n which_o labour_n and_o be_v lade_v with_o the_o heavye_a burden_n of_o sin_n that_o he_o may_v refresh_v they_o and_o indewe_v they_o with_o everlasting_a life_n c._o notwithstanding_o let_v we_o here_o note_n and_o consider_v that_o life_n be_v so_o general_o promise_v to_o all_o man_n that_o believe_v in_o christ_n 11.23_o mat_n 11.23_o that_o yet_o faith_n be_v the_o condition_n annex_v to_o the_o promise_n which_o faith_n appertain_v not_o to_o all_o for_o christ_n be_v exhibit_v and_o offer_v unto_o all_o notwithstanding_o 3._o 2._o thess_n 3._o god_n open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o elect_a only_o that_o they_o may_v seek_v he_o by_o faith_n 16._o for_o so_o god_n love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n r._n our_o saviour_n christ_n go_v on_o still_o in_o the_o former_a disputation_n still_o more_o plain_o open_v and_o declare_v that_o righteousness_n come_v not_o by_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o behold_v of_o the_o serpent_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o therewithal_o show_v the_o first_o cause_n and_o principal_a original_n of_o our_o salvation_n love_n no_o peace_n of_o conscience_n without_o god_n love_n and_o that_o because_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v least_o in_o doubt_n for_o our_o mind_n have_v no_o peaceable_a rest_n or_o quietness_n in_o the_o which_o they_o may_v stay_v themselves_o until_o we_o come_v to_o the_o free_a love_n of_o god_n therefore_o as_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o our_o salvation_n consist_v in_o no_o other_o than_o in_o christ_n so_o we_o must_v see_v whereby_o christ_n be_v unite_v unto_o we_o &_o why_o he_o be_v offer_v to_o we_o to_o be_v our_o saviour_n eternal_a love_n in_o god_n and_o faith_n in_o we_o bringet_n 〈◊〉_d we_o life_n eternal_a both_o these_o thing_n be_v bear_v distinct_o put_v down_o unto_o we_o the_o first_o be_v a_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n the_o second_o be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n by_o which_o he_o so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o send_v life_n to_o the_o same_o by_o his_o only_a son_n to_o save_v mankind_n from_o destruction_n and_o this_o order_n be_v diligent_o to_o be_v note_v for_o when_o the_o original_n of_o our_o salvation_n come_v in_o question_n by_o and_o by_o according_a to_o our_o natural_a ambition_n burst_v forth_o devilish_a imagination_n of_o our_o own_o merit_n we_o feign_v that_o god_n be_v therefore_o merciful_a because_o he_o have_v respect_n to_o none_o but_o those_o who_o he_o judge_v worthy_a frustrate_v mercy_n of_o god_n make_v man_n merit_n frustrate_v but_o the_o scripture_n do_v every_o where_n extol_v his_o mere_a and_o simple_a mercy_n which_o clean_o abolish_v all_o merit_n and_o this_o be_v the_o very_a meaning_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o these_o word_n when_o he_o appoint_v the_o cause_n in_o god_n mercy_n m._n therefore_o the_o love_n of_o god_n with_o the_o which_o he_o have_v love_v the_o world_n have_v so_o determine_v that_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v save_v by_o the_o send_n of_o the_o son_n and_o our_o saviour_n do_v slight_o pass_v over_o this_o love_n but_o do_v dilligentlye_o amplyfie_v and_o inculcate_v the_o same_o when_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o send_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o most_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a pledge_n of_o his_o fatherly_a love_n toward_o us._n r._n whereof_o then_o come_v salvation_n whereof_o come_v justification_n whereof_o come_v the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n come_v these_o from_o the_o worthiness_n or_o merit_n of_o man_n god_n forbid_v but_o they_o have_v their_o original_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n for_o we_o have_v always_o abide_v so_o much_o as_o we_o can_v in_o our_o sin_n in_o death_n and_o in_o hell_n except_o god_n of_o his_o entire_a love_n with_o the_o which_o he_o love_v we_o be_v as_o yet_o miserable_a sinner_n have_v not_o give_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n for_o us._n hereupon_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o this_o be_v love_n not_o that_o we_o love_v he_o for_o the_o flesh_n be_v utterlye_o void_a of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n but_o because_o he_o love_v we_o first_o 4.10_o 1._o joh_n 4.10_o and_o send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v 5.8_o rom._n 5.8_o god_n commend_v or_o declare_v his_o love_n toward_o we_o in_o that_o when_o as_o yet_o we_o be_v miserable_a sinner_n christ_n die_v for_o us._n death_n sin_n bring_v with_o it_o death_n c._n without_o all_o doubt_n where_o sin_n reign_v we_o shall_v find_v nothing_o but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n which_o bring_v with_o it_o death_n therefore_o it_o be_v only_o mercy_n which_o reconcyle_v we_o unto_o god_n that_o therewithal_o we_o may_v be_v restore_v unto_o life_n if_o any_o man_n demand_n in_o who_o this_o love_n be_v found_v the_o apostle_n paul_n answer_v 1.5_o ephe._n 1.5_o that_o it_o be_v found_v in_o the_o purpose_n of_o his_o will_n notwithstanding_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n seem_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o many_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n which_o place_n the_o first_o and_o principal_a foundation_n of_o god_n love_n toward_o we_o in_o christ_n and_o do_v show_v that_o without_o he_o we_o be_v displease_v and_o hateful_a unto_o god._n but_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o the_o hide_a and_o secret_a love_n with_o the_o which_o god_n have_v
be_v whole_o occupy_v in_o the_o personne_n of_o man_n have_v little_a regard_n to_o the_o veritye_n of_o doctrine_n r._n for_o this_o contention_n be_v plain_a carnal_a and_o proceed_v from_o ambition_n as_o also_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n accuse_v a_o certain_a man_n which_o cast_v out_o deville_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o follow_v not_o they_o for_o that_o they_o think_v that_o authority_n to_o work_v miracle_n 22.24_o mar._n 9.38_o mat._n 18.1_o luk._n 22.24_o be_v give_v whole_o unto_o they_o furthermore_o they_o contend_v too_o carnallye_o about_o the_o supremacye_n m._n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o in_o this_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n 9.14_o mat._n 9.14_o that_o they_o labour_v for_o their_o master_n against_o christ_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o emulation_n for_o we_o have_v the_o like_a in_o the_o nine_o of_o mathewe_n but_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o there_o be_v no_o contention_n between_o christ_n and_o john_n neither_o do_v john_n seek_v any_o other_o thing_n but_o that_o he_o may_v decrease_v as_o christ_n increase_v bu_n therefore_o by_o this_o example_n we_o see_v how_o much_o we_o may_v hurt_v the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n minister_n the_o unitye_n of_o the_o church_n rend_v by_o lean_v to_o much_o to_o god_n minister_n if_o we_o attribute_v to_o much_o to_o god_n minister_n for_o so_o both_o the_o glory_n which_o belong_v unto_o christ_n the_o creator_n be_v give_v to_o creature_n and_o also_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n rend_v when_o as_o one_o be_v addict_v to_o this_o minister_n and_o another_o to_o that_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o the_o corinthian_n 3.4_o 1._o cor._n 1.12_o 1._o cor._n 3.4_o i_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v contention_n among_o you_o for_o everye_o one_o say_v i_o be_o of_o paul_n and_o i_o be_o of_o apollo_n and_o i_o be_o of_o cephas_n and_o i_o be_o of_o christ_n be_v christ_n divide_v be_v paul_n crucify_a for_o you_o 23.8_o math._n 23.8_o either_o be_v you_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n to_o this_o end_n also_o pertain_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o you_o call_v lord_n for_o one_o be_v your_o lord_n even_o christ_n c._n therefore_o they_o be_v here_o note_v which_o be_v rather_o lead_v with_o the_o vain_a and_o wicked_a love_n of_o man_n than_o with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v admonish_v to_o have_v regard_n to_o this_o one_o thing_n and_o to_o seek_v by_o all_o mean_v possible_a that_o christ_n alone_o may_v be_v glorify_v 4.1_o 1._o cor._n 4.1_o a._n and_o as_o for_o all_o other_o let_v we_o esteem_v they_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o dispensatour_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n 26._o and_o they_o come_v unto_o john_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o rabbi_n he_o that_o be_v with_o thou_o beyond_o jordane_n to_o who_o thou_o bear_v witness_v behold_v the_o same_o baptize_v and_o all_o man_n come_v to_o he_o and_o they_o come_v to_o john_n par._n the_o disciple_n of_o john_n go_v about_o to_o turn_v away_o the_o people_n from_o the_o baptism_n of_o jesu_n and_o to_o persuade_v that_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n be_v more_o effectual_a to_o wash_v away_o sin_n than_o the_o baptism_n of_o our_o lord_n jesu_n the_o which_o thing_n when_o they_o can_v not_o persuade_v the_o people_n unto_o they_o come_v unto_o john_n make_v complaint_n unto_o he_o and_o think_v that_o he_o will_v take_v it_o in_o evil_a part_n and_o by_o some_o mean_n or_o other_o restrain_v this_o emulation_n m._n and_o they_o find_v no_o fault_n with_o the_o legal_a purifyinge_n but_o with_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o emulation_n they_o be_v ful_o bend_v against_o christ_n for_o johns_n sake_n even_o as_o josuah_n 11.28_o num._n 11.28_o be_v zealous_a for_o moses_n and_o true_o this_o emulation_n or_o envy_n be_v so_o much_o the_o worse_o for_o that_o contemptuouslye_o they_o speak_v of_o christ_n for_o to_o extenuate_v and_o abase_v christ_n they_o geve_v he_o no_o manner_n of_o title_n of_o reverence_n whereas_o they_o call_v john_n master_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v he_o which_o join_v himself_o to_o thou_o as_o a_o friend_n and_o favourer_n of_o thy_o cause_n and_o which_o be_v baptise_a of_o thou_o of_o who_o also_o for_o honour_n sake_n thou_o bear_v witness_v as_o of_o a_o holy_a man_n behold_v the_o same_o be_v now_o convert_v and_o turn_v another_o way_n abuse_v thy_o testimony_n against_o thou_o presume_v to_o baptise_v and_o have_v go_v so_o far_o that_o all_o man_n now_o come_v to_o he_o the_o which_o no_o doubt_n will_v fall_v out_o great_o to_o the_o defase_a of_o thy_o honour_n and_o fame_n r._n therefore_o we_o pray_v thou_o that_o by_o thy_o authority_n thou_o will_v forbid_v he_o and_o his_o disciple_n to_o baptise_v for_o it_o be_v a_o venture_n if_o they_o proceed_v lest_o we_o be_v forsake_v and_o despise_v for_o all_o man_n forsake_v we_o gooe_v to_o they_o and_o be_v baptise_a bu_n behold_v the_o fruit_n of_o a_o rash_a zeal_n without_o knowledge_n knowledge_n zeal_n with_o out_o knowledge_n b._n hereby_o also_o it_o appear_v how_o soon_o good_a man_n may_v be_v make_v the_o author_n of_o sect_n against_o their_o wylle_n to_o who_o thou_o bear_v witness_v c._n by_o this_o argument_n either_o they_o gooe_v about_o to_o make_v christ_n inferior_a to_o john_n or_o else_o to_o make_v he_o bind_v unto_o john_n because_o he_o be_v come_v to_o honour_n for_o they_o count_v it_o for_o a_o great_a benefit_n that_o john_n have_v give_v to_o christ_n such_o glorious_a title_n and_o name_n concern_v the_o messiah_n and_o whereas_o they_o add_v that_o all_o man_n come_v unto_o christ_n that_o procee_v of_o most_o wicked_a envy_n for_o they_o fear_v jest_n their_o master_n shall_v be_v forsake_v straight_o way_n of_o the_o multitude_n a._n the_o like_a almost_o speak_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr of_o christ_n say_v if_o we_o let_v he_o go_v thus_o 8.12_o john_n 11.48_o joh._n 12.19_o john_n 8.12_o all_o man_n will_v believe_v on_o he_o also_o say_v they_o you_o see_v that_o you_o profit_v nothing_o behold_v all_o the_o whole_a world_n go_v after_o he_o but_o i_o will_v to_o god_n all_o the_o world_n will_v follow_v christ_n for_o he_o which_o follow_v he_o walk_v not_o in_o darkness_n but_o have_v the_o light_n of_o life_n 27._o john_n answer_v and_o say_v a_o man_n can_v receyve_v nothing_o except_o it_o be_v give_v he_o from_o above_o certain_a refer_v these_o word_n unto_o christ_n as_o though_o john_n shall_v accuse_v his_o disciple_n of_o wicked_a presumption_n against_o god_n in_o go_v about_o to_o take_v away_o from_o christ_n that_o which_o be_v give_v he_o of_o his_o father_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v no_o man_n will_v usurp_v or_o take_v any_o such_o thing_n upon_o he_o except_o it_o be_v give_v he_o from_o above_o let_v it_o not_o therefore_o offend_v you_o that_o he_o gather_v disciple_n unto_o he_o by_o baptism_n and_o that_o many_o come_v unto_o he_o i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o both_o you_o and_o all_o other_o man_n will_v acknowledge_v he_o for_o a_o master_n and_o principal_a teacher_n in_o vain_a therefore_o you_o go_v about_o to_o abase_v he_o who_o god_n have_v exalt_v but_o other_o some_o think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o exclamation_n into_o the_o which_o he_o burst_v forth_o even_o for_o very_a grief_n that_o his_o disciple_n have_v so_o little_o profit_v and_o verylye_o they_o be_v to_o much_o blind_v in_o seek_v to_o make_v he_o no_o better_o than_o his_o servant_n who_o they_o have_v hear_v so_o often_o to_o be_v christ_n therefore_o john_n may_v have_v just_o pronounce_v that_o he_o have_v spend_v his_o labour_n in_o vain_a in_o teach_v man_n both_o deaf_a and_o senseless_a until_o they_o be_v renew_v in_o mind_n but_o their_o sentence_n be_v more_o probable_a which_o refer_v these_o word_n to_o john_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v it_o be_v not_o in_o your_o nor_o my_o power_n to_o make_v myself_o great_a because_o everye_o one_o of_o we_o must_v be_v such_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o appoint_v 5.5_o heb._n 5.5_o for_o he_o which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v not_o honour_v himself_o what_o man_n be_v he_o that_o dare_v presume_v to_o covette_n more_o than_o it_o shall_v please_v the_o lord_n to_o geve_v he_o therefore_o it_o do_v not_o appertain_v to_o my_o authority_n to_o stay_v christ_n from_o his_o office_n for_o this_o be_v my_o office_n only_o which_o i_o have_v receyve_v from_o god_n to_o prepare_v the_o way_n before_o christ_n that_o i_o may_v be_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o crier_n in_o the_o wilderness_n to_o baptise_v with_o water_n
honour_v notable_a man_n which_o be_v endue_v with_o godliness_n &_o with_o other_o rare_a gift_n but_o they_o must_v be_v honour_v no_o far_o than_o that_o god_n himself_o may_v have_v the_o pre-eminence_n &_o glory_n that_o christ_n with_o his_o gospel_n may_v shine_v most_o clere_o for_o to_o he_o the_o whole_a glory_n of_o the_o world_n must_v give_v place_n b._n we_o must_v also_o note_v that_o although_o the_o samaritan_n be_v stranger_n yet_o notwithstanding_o afterward_o when_o the_o jew_n prosper_v they_o boast_v that_o they_o spring_v of_o joseph_n jews_n joseph_n last_o chap._n of_o the_o 9_o book_n of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o jews_n as_o josephus_n testify_v hereupon_o this_o woman_n call_v jacob_n her_o father_n c._n even_o so_o at_o this_o day_n the_o papist_n be_v bastard_n and_o a_o adulterous_a seed_n very_o arrogant_o brag_v and_o boast_v of_o the_o father_n &_o exalt_v themselves_o above_o the_o lawful_a son_n of_o god_n for_o although_o the_o samaritan_n spring_v of_o jacob_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o they_o do_v degenerate_a and_o swerve_v from_o true_a godliness_n this_o be_v a_o preposterous_a brag_n now_o they_o be_v the_o offspring_n of_o the_o people_n of_o cuthah_n so_o call_v of_o the_o ryver_n cuthah_n c._n or_o at_o the_o least_o wise_a 24._o 4._o king_n 17_o 24._o gather_v from_o among_o other_o profane_a nation_n yet_o notwithstanding_o let_v not_o to_o brag_v falselye_o of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a patriarche_n but_o without_o any_o profit_n even_o so_o it_o must_v necessary_o happen_v unto_o all_o those_o which_o joy_n amiss_o in_o the_o light_n of_o man_n as_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o light_n of_o god_n and_o to_o have_v no_o society_n with_o the_o holy_a father_n who_o title_n they_o have_v abuse_v 13._o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o she_o whosoever_o drinck_v of_o this_o water_n shall_v thirst_n again_o m._n again_o the_o lord_n answer_v not_o unto_o all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o woman_n but_o rather_o to_o that_o which_o appertain_v to_o the_o purpose_n &_o that_o because_o she_o have_v so_o great_o exalt_v this_o well_o as_o though_o there_o can_v no_o better_a water_n be_v give_v for_o this_o cause_n he_o expound_v his_o former_a sentence_n concern_v the_o water_n c._n and_o although_o he_o see_v that_o he_o profit_v little_a and_o that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v make_v but_o a_o jest_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o go_v forward_o more_o plainelye_o to_o expound_v that_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v r._n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v the_o more_o stir_v up_o the_o woman_n to_o seek_v that_o water_n of_o life_n for_o he_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o use_n of_o both_o water_n as_o that_o the_o one_o belong_v to_o the_o body_n for_o a_o time_n and_o that_o the_o other_o perpetuallye_o serve_v for_o the_o refresh_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o as_o the_o body_n be_v subject_a to_o corruption_n so_o the_o preseruative_n belong_v to_o the_o same_o must_v needs_o be_v temporal_a and_o transitory_a but_o that_o which_o quicken_v the_o soul_n must_v needs_o be_v everlasting_a 14._o but_o whosoever_o drink_v of_o the_o water_n that_o i_o shall_v geve_v he_o shall_v never_o be_v more_o a_o thyrste_fw-mi but_o the_o water_n that_o i_o shall_v geve_v he_o shall_v be_v in_o he_o a_o well_o of_o water_n spring_v uppe_o into_o everlasting_a life_n r._n the_o manner_n of_o drink_v of_o this_o water_n be_v by_o faith_n therefore_o everye_o one_o which_o drink_v of_o this_o water_n that_o be_v to_o say_v everye_o one_o that_o beléeve_v in_o i_o and_o receyve_v of_o i_o the_o promise_a spirit_n shall_v never_o thyrste_v but_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o he_o a_o well_o of_o water_n spring_v into_o everlasting_a life_n this_o be_v the_o very_a same_o which_o he_o say_v in_o another_o place_n 7.39_o joh._n 7.39_o he_o which_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v have_v flow_v out_o of_o his_o belly_n river_n of_o water_n of_o life_n this_o also_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n which_o all_o the_o beléever_n in_o he_o shall_v receyve_v for_o he_o which_o have_v receyve_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o faith_n he_o have_v a_o vein_n or_o spring_n flow_v from_o sin_n to_o righteousness_n from_o damnation_n to_o salvation_n from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o from_o earth_n to_o heaven_n b._n it_o be_v most_o certain_a therefore_o that_o this_o water_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n wherefore_o if_o he_o that_o have_v once_o drink_v of_o this_o spiryte_n can_v never_o thir_v again_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o which_o have_v once_o this_o spiryte_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o who_o it_o be_v once_o give_v to_o believe_v shall_v never_o fall_v from_o the_o grace_n of_o god._n therefore_o paul_n glori_v that_o nothing_o from_o above_o neither_o from_o beneathe_n 8.35_o rom._n 8.35_o can_v remove_v he_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesu_n c._n moreover_o it_o be_v not_o repugnaunt_a nor_o disagrée_v with_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o faithful_a even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o their_o life_n have_v a_o fervent_a desire_n to_o have_v more_o plenty_n of_o grace_n for_o his_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v drink_v our_o fill_n the_o first_o day_n that_o he_o geve_v unto_o we_o his_o holy_a spirit_n but_o that_o he_o only_o seek_v to_o geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o spring_n flow_v perpetuallye_o and_o so_o life_n he_z which_o once_o receyve_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n be_v seal_v to_o eternal_a life_n that_o there_o be_v danger_n lest_o they_o shall_v wyther_o away_o which_o be_v renew_v by_o spiritual_a grace_n therefore_o although_o we_o thir_v all_o our_o life_n time_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o we_o have_v not_o receyve_v this_o spirit_n for_o one_o day_n or_o for_o a_o short_a time_n but_o that_o the_o same_o flow_v perpetuallye_o shall_v never_o forsake_v us._n thus_o the_o faithful_a thirst_n during_o all_o the_o time_n of_o their_o mortal_a life_n and_o that_o feruentlye_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o time_n they_o be_v full_a of_o lively_a liquour_n because_o how_o little_a grace_n soever_o they_o have_v receyve_v the_o same_o do_v daily_o moisten_v they_o that_o they_o can_v never_o be_v quite_o dry_a wherefore_o this_o fullness_n be_v not_o oppose_v or_o set_v against_o desire_n but_o only_o against_o dryness_n the_o which_o thing_n in_o the_o word_n follow_v as_o yet_o he_o do_v more_o plainelye_o express_v there_o shall_v say_v he_o be_v a_o well_o of_o water_n flow_v into_o eternal_a life_n for_o here_o be_v a_o continual_a water_v note_v which_o in_o this_o mortal_a and_o transitory_a life_n foster_v and_o increase_v in_o they_o heavenlye_a eternity_n b._n for_o as_o he_o can_v never_o wyther_o away_o by_o drought_n which_o have_v a_o spring_n continual_o flow_v in_o his_o bowel_n even_o so_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v full_a of_o all_o goodness_n and_o grace_n and_o must_v always_o and_o in_o all_o thing_n have_v present_a consolation_n in_o who_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n child_n do_v dwell_v c._n therefore_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o flow_v in_o we_o for_o a_o short_a time_n but_o do_v continual_o pour_v out_o itself_o untyll_o we_o come_v to_o the_o bless_a state_n of_o immortalytye_n 15._o the_o woman_n say_v unto_o he_o sir_n geve_v i_o of_o that_o water_n that_o i_o thirst_n not_o neither_o come_v hither_o to_o draw_v b._n this_o woman_n seem_v to_o be_v but_o a_o prattler_n and_o talker_n how_o soever_o she_o be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n and_o have_v the_o seed_n of_o god_n for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o she_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o christ_n speak_v of_o spiritual_a water_n but_o because_o she_o contemn_v he_o she_o make_v no_o account_n of_o all_o his_o promise_n for_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o teach_v so_o long_o as_o he_o which_o speak_v be_v of_o no_o authority_n with_o us._n the_o woman_n therefore_o very_o overthwart_o repli_v against_o christ_n b._n and_o speak_v these_o thing_n ironicè_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o a_o contrary_a sense_n as_o if_o she_o shall_v say_v thou_o brag_v much_o but_o i_o see_v nothing_o if_o thou_o can_v do_v as_o thou_o say_v do_v it_o in_o deed_n m._n therefore_o by_o this_o example_n we_o see_v that_o the_o elect_v sometime_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o darkness_n without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n do_v deride_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o rydiculous_a and_o foolish_a wherefore_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o condemn_v everye_o one_o who_o we_o see_v to_o be_v derider_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n
which_o the_o child_n very_o seldom_o consider_v thou_o shall_v never_o find_v in_o all_o the_o evangelicall_a history_n any_o one_o son_n which_o come_v unto_o christ_n and_o say_v .15.22_o math._n 17.14_o and_o .9.18_o and_o .15.22_o lord_n come_v down_o before_o that_o my_o father_n dye_v but_o you_o shall_v often_o read_v of_o this_o affection_n and_o care_n of_o parent_n for_o their_o child_n which_o they_o have_v utter_v unto_o christ_n m._n howbeit_o also_o it_o appear_v in_o this_o man_n what_o corrupt_a &_o preposterous_a love_n some_o parent_n bear_v towards_o their_o child_n for_o he_o only_o seek_v the_o corporal_a health_n of_o his_o son_n neglect_v the_o spiritual_a and_o true_a life_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v begin_v to_o teach_v he_o say_v not_o lord_n help_v our_o faith_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n but_o as_o for_o our_o bodylye_a health_n child_n love_n in_o many_o parent_n corrupt_v towards_o their_o child_n let_v that_o be_v as_o it_o seem_v good_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n but_o he_o say_v and_o that_o earnest_o lord_n come_v down_o before_o my_o son_n dye_v and_o what_o father_n at_o any_o time_n come_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o say_v lord_n my_o son_n have_v no_o fear_n of_o god_n whereby_o i_o perceyve_v that_o he_o be_v sick_a in_o soul_n and_o in_o great_a peril_n help_v he_o i_o beseech_v thou_o also_o they_o which_o at_o this_o day_n desire_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n how_o many_o of_o they_o be_v there_o i_o pray_v you_o which_o desire_n the_o congregation_n to_o pray_v unto_o god_n for_o they_o that_o they_o may_v have_v faith_n the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o patience_n 50._o jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o go_v thy_o way_n thy_o son_n lyve_v the_o man_n believe_v the_o word_n that_o jesus_n have_v say_v unto_o he_o and_o go_v his_o way_n jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o bu_n the_o lord_n in_o very_a deed_n confess_v that_o he_o can_v do_v much_o more_o than_o the_o ruler_n trust_v he_o can_v do_v be_v the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o death_n which_o can_v both_o retain_v the_o life_n when_o it_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o body_n and_o also_o when_o it_o be_v clean_o go_v call_v the_o same_o again_o for_o he_o say_v go_v thy_o way_n thy_o son_n live_v c._n signify_v that_o he_o be_v escape_v out_o of_o the_o peril_n of_o death_n but_o see_v this_o man_n proceed_v and_o persevere_v in_o entreat_v and_o pray_v christ_n obtain_v at_o the_o leangth_n his_o heart_n desire_v thou_o may_v gather_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o reprehend_v he_o because_o he_o will_v whole_o reject_v he_o and_o refuse_v his_o prayer_n but_o rather_o to_o correct_v that_o vice_n which_o stay_v he_o from_o come_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o we_o say_v already_o before_o that_o this_o reprehension_n belong_v rather_o to_o all_o the_o people_n than_o to_o one_o man_n moreover_o here_o the_o singular_a humanity_n and_o gentleness_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n appear_v in_o that_o he_o bear_v with_o the_o man_n rudeness_n extend_v his_o power_n far_o than_o he_o look_v for_o he_o request_v that_o christ_n will_v heal_v his_o son_n by_o come_v unto_o he_o he_o think_v that_o he_o can_v heal_v his_o sick_a son_n of_o his_o disease_n but_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o he_o can_v raise_v his_o son_n be_v dead_a from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o therefore_o he_o urge_v he_o to_o make_v haste_n lest_o death_n prevent_v he_o r._n and_o by_o this_o make_n of_o haste_n he_o declare_v his_o incredulity_n for_o unbelief_n make_v haste_n but_o faith_n wait_v and_o tarry_v the_o lord_n leisure_n 1●_n faith_n tarry_v the_o lord_n leisure_n esa_n 28_o 1●_n and_o therefore_o the_o prophet_n say_v he_o which_o believe_v shall_v not_o make_v haste_n c._n see_v then_o christ_n bear_v with_o both_o these_o infyrmitye_n we_o may_v hereby_o gather_v of_o how_o great_a price_n he_o esteem_v even_o the_o least_o faith_n this_o also_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v note_v that_o christ_n in_v not_o satisfy_v his_o will_n and_o desire_n work_v by_o mean_n which_o we_o think_v not_o of_o to_o help_v we_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v learn_v not_o to_o prescribe_v unto_o he_o any_o thing_n the_o man_n believe_v the_o word_n r._n therefore_o by_o this_o word_n of_o christ_n not_o only_o the_o son_n be_v heal_v but_o also_o the_o father_n faith_n increase_v and_o confirm_v and_o as_o the_o son_n by_o this_o word_n as_o by_o a_o sovereign_a medicine_n receyve_v health_n so_o also_o the_o father_n receyve_v strength_n of_o faith_n for_o that_o faith_n be_v strong_a and_o firm_a which_o be_v conceyve_v by_o the_o word_n and_o not_o by_o miracle_n a._n but_o do_v he_o not_o believe_v at_o the_o first_o how_o have_v he_o come_v unto_o christ_n to_o obtain_v any_o thing_n at_o his_o hand_n except_o he_o have_v be_v endue_v with_o some_o faith_n i_o answer_v bu_n he_o do_v at_o the_o first_o believe_v the_o lord_n for_o he_o have_v not_o come_v unto_o he_o if_o he_o have_v not_o first_o conceyve_v some_o notable_a hope_n of_o his_o power_n and_o clemencye_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o hear_v his_o word_n and_o understand_v his_o promise_n he_o beléeve_v more_o firmelye_o therefore_o he_o trouble_v the_o lord_n no_o far_o but_o go_v his_o way_n and_o as_o he_o beléeve_v he_o find_v his_o son_n restoor_v to_o health_n c._n for_o because_o he_o come_v with_o this_o persuasion_n that_o christ_n be_v a_o prophet_n of_o god_n therefore_o he_o be_v so_o ready_o to_o believe_v that_o take_v hold_v of_o one_o word_n he_o print_v the_o same_o in_o his_o mind_n and_o although_o he_o do_v not_o so_o reverentlye_o esteem_v and_o think_v of_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o become_v he_o yet_o notwithstanding_o a_o short_a promise_n make_v he_o to_o conceyve_v sudden_o a_o assure_a hope_n insomuch_o that_o he_o believe_v the_o life_n of_o his_o son_n to_o be_v include_v in_o the_o only_a word_n of_o christ_n god_n promptness_n in_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o this_o promptness_n and_o readiness_n ought_v every_o one_o of_o we_o to_o receyve_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o seldom_o or_o never_o shall_v such_o present_a effect_n follow_v in_o the_o hearer_n for_o how_o many_o be_v there_o which_o profit_n so_o much_o at_o the_o hear_n of_o many_o sermon_n as_o this_o profane_a man_n profit_v at_o the_o hear_n of_o one_o word_n wherefore_o we_o must_v use_v the_o more_o diligence_n in_o shake_v of_o our_o dulness_n and_o s●outh_n and_o especial_o we_o must_v pray_v unto_o god_n that_o it_o will_v please_v he_o so_o to_o work_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o we_o may_v be_v no_o less_o ready_a to_o believe_v than_o he_o be_v gentle_a and_o ready_o to_o promise_v 51_o and_o as_o he_o be_v now_o go_v down_o the_o servant_n meet_v he_o and_o tell_v he_o say_v thy_o son_n lyve_v bu_n that_o which_o now_o follow_v do_v set_v forth_o as_o well_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o effect_n and_o nature_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n the_o miracle_n may_v be_v more_o notable_a and_o more_o pure_o purge_v from_o all_o evyll_n suspicion_n and_o also_o that_o the_o force_n of_o faith_n may_v more_v and_o more_o appear_v a._n for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n m._n the_o lad_n be_v heal_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n otherwise_o he_o have_v dye_v by_o the_o contagiousnesse_n of_o his_o sickness_n but_o this_o be_v know_v as_o yet_o to_o no_o man_n the_o servant_n bring_v word_n that_o his_o son_n be_v recover_v but_o how_o and_o by_o who_o power_n he_o be_v revyue_v that_o they_o know_v not_o therefore_o the_o meeting_n of_o the_o servant_n with_o he_o by_o the_o way_n and_o the_o glad_a tiding_n which_o they_o bring_v unto_o the_o sorrowful_a father_n serve_v thus_o far_o to_o the_o set_v forth_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v speak_v the_o truth_n concern_v the_o son_n restoor_v to_o health_n though_o he_o be_v absent_a the_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o spyrite_n of_o prophecy_n and_o also_o to_o be_v beléeve_v of_o the_o father_n as_o a_o prophetical_a oracle_n c._n moreover_o with_o the_o efficacye_n of_o the_o word_n here_o be_v also_o describe_v the_o effect_n of_o faith_n for_o as_o christ_n restore_v the_o son_n to_o life_n which_o be_v now_o at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n even_o so_o the_o father_n by_o his_o faith_n in_o a_o moment_n recover_v and_o receyve_v again_o his_o son_n safe_a and_o sound_o let_v we_o know_v therefore_o that_o so_o often_o as_o the_o lord_n offer_v unto_o we_o his_o benefit_n his_o power_n
m._n this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o christ_n do_v at_o that_o time_n and_o which_o he_o intend_v to_o do_v afterward_o untyll_o his_o ascension_n c._n for_o he_o declare_v by_o these_o word_n that_o the_o miracle_n which_o he_o have_v show_v in_o heal_v the_o sick_a man_n be_v not_o the_o chief_a of_o those_o work_n which_o the_o father_n have_v commit_v unto_o he_o for_o we_o must_v note_v that_o he_o have_v give_v there_o a_o taste_n only_o of_o that_o grace_n of_o the_o which_o he_o be_v proper_o both_o a_o minister_n and_o the_o author_n name_o that_o he_o may_v restore_v life_n unto_o the_o world_n b._n therefore_o where_o he_o speak_v here_o of_o great_a thing_n he_o mean_v the_o raise_n again_o of_o man_n from_o death_n to_o life_n the_o which_o be_v a_o lively_a image_n both_o of_o the_o general_a resurrection_n of_o all_o man_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o latter_a day_n and_o also_o of_o the_o internal_a justification_n of_o the_o elect_a by_o faith_n both_o which_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v by_o his_o power_n as_o hereby_o he_o have_v declare_v what_o great_a work_n than_o these_o can_v the_o father_n do_v because_o you_o shall_v marvel_v here_o he_o do_v geve_v a_o secret_a nyp_n to_o their_o ingratitude_n because_o they_o despise_v that_o so_o manifest_a a_o show_n token_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v although_o you_o be_v dull_a and_o senseless_a yet_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n shall_v do_v hereafter_o by_o i_o shall_v make_v you_o to_o marvel_n whether_o you_o will_v or_o no._n notwithstanding_o this_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v fulfil_v see_v you_o know_v that_o in_o see_v they_o see_v not_o according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n answer_n be_v make_v 6.9_o esay_n 6.9_o that_o christ_n speak_v not_o here_o of_o their_o affection_n but_o only_o note_v how_o magnificent_o he_o will_v within_o a_o while_n after_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n m._n wherefore_o he_o say_v not_o that_o you_o may_v believe_v but_o he_o say_v that_o you_o may_v marvel_v because_o the_o wicked_a of_o who_o he_o speak_v here_o will_v easylye_o be_v cause_v to_o wonder_n but_o will_v not_o in_o any_o wise_n be_v bring_v to_o faith_n they_o marvel_v when_o lazarus_n be_v raise_v up_o they_o say_v this_o man_n do_v many_o sign_n 11.47_o joh._n 11.47_o but_o they_o do_v not_o hereupon_o by_o and_o by_o believe_v on_o he_o but_o consult_v the_o more_o to_o kill_v he_o aug._n they_o marvel_v therefore_o but_o they_o be_v not_o convert_v m._n but_o this_o kind_n of_o admiration_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o have_v no_o excuse_n for_o their_o malice_n and_o impiety_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o verse_n of_o the_o fifteen_o chapter_n follow_v 21._o for_o likewise_o as_o the_o father_n raise_v up_o the_o dead_a and_o quicken_v they_o even_o so_o the_o son_n quicken_v who_o he_o will_v for_o as_o the_o father_n raise_v up_o bu_n by_o evident_a act_n or_o by_o operation_n he_o proove_v that_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n do_v all_o one_o thing_n and_o be_v therefore_o equal_a in_o the_o unitye_n of_o substance_n be_v one_o true_a god_n c._n therefore_o briefelye_o he_o here_o declare_v what_o office_n be_v commit_v unto_o he_o of_o the_o father_n for_o although_o he_o seem_v to_o choose_v one_o kind_n yet_o notwithstanding_o his_o doctrine_n be_v general_a in_o the_o which_o he_o preach_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o life_n for_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o life_n righteousness_n all_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o salvation_n bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v it_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o high_a substance_n to_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a to_o preserve_v and_o to_o quicken_v but_o i_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a preserve_v &_o quicken_v i_o differ_v nothing_o therefore_o from_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n yea_o by_o what_o mean_n and_o power_n soever_o the_o father_n do_v quicken_v by_o the_o same_o do_v i_o make_v alyve_a also_o but_o we_o must_v note_v how_o christ_n bring_v life_n unto_o we_o for_o he_o find_v we_o all_o dead_a therefore_o we_o must_v needs_o begin_v at_o the_o resurrection_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v not_o superfluous_a that_o he_o join_v these_o two_o word_n to_o raise_v and_o to_o quicken_v together_o because_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a that_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o death_n except_o christ_n ful_o and_o perfect_o restore_v unto_o we_o life_n m._n furthermore_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o gather_v out_o of_o these_o word_n that_o the_o father_n raise_v up_o some_o and_o the_o son_n othersome_a from_o death_n when_o as_o they_o be_v not_o only_o equal_a but_o also_o do_v work_v a_o like_a as_o be_v say_v afore_o whereupon_o 11.41_o john_n 11.41_o when_o he_o raise_v up_o lazarus_n he_o lyft_v up_o his_o eye_n toward_o heaven_n give_v thanks_n to_o his_o heavenly_a father_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v behold_v in_o that_o work_n not_o only_o the_o power_n of_o the_o son_n but_o the_o power_n of_o the_o father_n also_o bu_n this_o parcel_n who_o he_o will_v do_v challenge_n unto_o the_o son_n not_o only_o full_a and_o free_a power_n but_o also_o note_v the_o order_n of_o redemption_n and_o salvation_n c._n for_o he_o make_v not_o this_o life_n appertain_v to_o all_o man_n but_o signify_v that_o he_o do_v special_o bestow_v this_o grace_n upon_o the_o elect_a elect_a they_o believe_v be_v the_o elect_a bu_n and_o they_o be_v the_o elect_a and_o choose_v of_o god_n which_o believe_v a._n therefore_o as_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n can_v have_v raise_v all_o the_o dead_a to_o life_n again_o if_o it_o have_v so_o please_v he_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o 9_o math._n 9_o be_v read_v to_o have_v raise_v only_o a_o few_o as_o jairous_a daughter_n the_o widow_n son_n and_o lazarus_n 11._o luke_n 7._o john_n 11._o even_o so_o although_o he_o have_v free_a and_o full_a power_n in_o himself_o to_o quicken_v yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o use_v the_o same_o only_a toward_o the_o elect_a for_o the_o son_n quicken_v who_o he_o will_v 22._o neither_o judge_v the_o father_n any_o man_n but_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n c._n now_o he_o more_o plain_o expound_v the_o whole_a affyrm_v that_o the_o father_n in_o the_o personne_fw-fr of_o the_o son_n do_v govern_v the_o world_n and_o by_o the_o same_o rule_v all_o thing_n b._n for_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o as_o god_n make_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o word_n even_o so_o also_o he_o do_v judge_v rule_n and_o govern_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o same_o c._n for_o the_o evangelist_n take_v judgement_n for_o rule_n and_o power_n according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n now_o we_o have_v the_o same_o name_o that_o christ_n have_v receyve_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n of_o the_o father_n to_o govern_v and_o rule_v heaven_n and_o earth_n at_o his_o pleasure_n a._n for_o all_o thing_n be_v give_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n also_o all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o he_o in_o heaven_n 11.27_o mat._n 11.27_o and_o in_o earth_n c._n but_o this_o be_v not_o speak_v so_o much_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n 28.18_o mat._n 28.18_o as_o of_o man_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v imagine_v that_o the_o father_n have_v resign_v his_o imperial_a right_a shall_v be_v idle_a as_o a_o private_a man_n in_o heaven_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o change_v in_o the_o father_n in_o that_o he_o have_v make_v christ_n king_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o 1.15_o christ_n lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n with_o the_o father_n colo._n 1.15_o for_o he_o be_v in_o the_o son_n and_o work_v in_o he_o but_o so_o soon_o as_o we_o seek_v to_o ascend_v unto_o god_n all_o our_o sense_n fail_v we_o christ_n be_v set_v before_o our_o eye_n as_o the_o lively_a invisible_a image_n of_o god_n in_o who_o face_n god_n the_o father_n who_o otherwise_o be_v far_o from_o we_o appear_v unto_o we_o lest_o the_o bare_a majesty_n of_o god_n by_o his_o exceed_a brightness_n shall_v overcome_v us._n m._n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o antichrist_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n do_v not_o without_o blasphemye_n challenge_v to_o himself_o this_o power_n of_o judge_v all_o man_n and_o with_o great_a impudencye_n be_v a_o sinful_a man_n neither_o judge_v just_o nor_o be_v exempt_v just_o from_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o man_n blaspheme●_n the_o bishop_n o●_n rome_n 〈◊〉_d blaspheme●_n say_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o no_o man_n a._n this_o be_v his_o sacrilegious_a tyranny_n by_o which_o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o take_v that_o to_o himself_o which_o belong_v
only_o to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o though_o christ_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n have_v utterlye_o forsake_v this_o office_n and_o ought_v not_o rather_o to_o reign_v untyll_o he_o have_v put_v all_o his_o enemy_n under_o his_o foot_n m._n if_o therefore_o christ_n be_v appoint_v of_o the_o father_n 110.1_o psal_n 110.1_o to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o man_n 15.25_o 1._o cor._n 15.25_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v most_o wise_a and_o such_o a_o one_o as_o no_o man_n can_v deceyve_v hereupon_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o knower_n of_o secréete_n and_o a_o searcher_n of_o heart_n m._n that_o we_o have_v get_v such_o a_o judge_n may_v learn_v to_o walk_v before_o he_o all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n in_o sinceritye_n of_o the_o heart_n even_o as_o if_o we_o be_v always_o before_o his_o face_n and_o in_o his_o sight_n 23._o because_o that_o all_o man_n shall_v honour_v the_o son_n even_o as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n he_o that_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n the_o same_o honour_v not_o the_o father_n which_o have_v send_v he_o because_o that_o all_o man_n r._n as_o the_o father_n have_v give_v all_o power_n of_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n so_o he_o will_v be_v honour_v in_o the_o person_n of_o his_o son_n c._n for_o he_o do_v not_o so_o reign_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n as_o though_o he_o himself_o live_v idelye_o in_o heaven_n as_o slothful_a king_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v but_o because_o he_o may_v declare_v his_o mighty_a power_n &_o presence_n in_o christ_n for_o what_o other_o thing_n signify_v these_o word_n because_o that_o all_o man_n shall_v honour_v the_o son_n then_o that_o the_o father_n will_v be_v know_v and_o woorship_v in_o the_o son_n christ_n god_n the_o father_n in_o christ_n therefore_o it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o seek_v god_n the_o father_n in_o christ_n there_o to_o behold_v his_o power_n and_o there_o to_o worship_v he_o for_o the_o father_n have_v whole_o pour_v himself_o into_o the_o son_n to_o what_o end_n sure_o to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o man_n may_v honour_v the_o son_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o whosoever_o will_v attain_v to_o salvation_n in_o god_n worship_n god_n and_o believe_v in_o god_n he_o may_v do_v this_o by_o his_o son_n christ_n for_o no_o man_n can_v obtain_v salvation_n in_o god_n without_o christ_n christ_n salvation_n only_a in_o christ_n because_o god_n save_v health_n be_v place_v whole_o in_o christ_n in_o like_a manner_n no_o man_n can_v worship_n god_n but_o by_o christ_n because_o christ_n be_v the_o wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n moreover_o 14.9_o john_n 10.9_o john_n 14.9_o no_o man_n can_v believe_v in_o god_n but_o by_o christ_n because_o christ_n be_v the_o door_n the_o way_n the_o truth_n &_o the_o life_n wherefore_o he_o that_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n the_o same_o honour_v not_o the_o father_n c._n all_o man_n will_v confess_v that_o god_n ought_v to_o be_v worship_v insomuch_o that_o we_o have_v this_o feel_v and_o understand_v ingraff_v in_o we_o by_o nature_n there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o dare_v deny_v this_o honour_n unto_o god_n yet_o nevertheless_o man_n mind_n err_v and_o go_v astray_o in_o seek_v after_o god_n hereupon_o come_v so_o many_o false_a god_n hereuppon_o come_v such_o abominable_a idolatry_n therefore_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o true_a god_n no_o where_o else_o then_o in_o christ_n neither_o shall_v we_o otherwise_o right_o worship_v he_o then_o in_o kiss_v his_o dear_a son_n 2.12_o psal_n 2.12_o as_o the_o prophet_n david_n teach_v bu_n therefore_o if_o any_o man_n will_v worship_v the_o father_n without_o the_o son_n as_o do_v the_o jew_n and_o turk_n as_o though_o he_o have_v not_o a_o son_n like_a and_o coequal_a with_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n he_o miss_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o father_n for_o he_o can_v be_v a_o father_n which_o want_v a_o son_n r._n we_o must_v note_v therefore_o that_o the_o name_n of_o god_n when_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o christ_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o vain_a fantasy_n and_o imagination_n wherefore_o whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o desire_v to_o have_v his_o worship_n acceptable_a unto_o the_o true_a god_n let_v he_o not_o depart_v from_o christ_n r._n for_o whosoever_o reject_v christ_n by_o infidelity_n reject_v god_n the_o ethnic_n also_o affirm_v that_o he_o worship_v god_n the_o creator_n of_o heaven_n &_o earth_n the_o jew_n also_o say_v the_o like_a of_o himself_o and_o the_o wicked_a man_n which_o be_v a_o christian_n only_o in_o name_n brag_v of_o the_o same_o but_o because_o christ_n to_o the_o ethnic_n be_v foolishness_n to_o the_o jew_n a_o offence_n and_o to_o the_o wicked_a contempt_n 23._o 1._o cor._n 1_o 23._o none_o of_o they_o do_v true_o believe_v in_o god_n neither_o true_o worship_n god_n for_o he_o will_v not_o be_v worship_v but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n c._n whereupon_o the_o evangelist_n saint_n john_n say_v in_o his_o epistle_n 2.22_o 1._o joh._n 2.22_o the_o same_o be_v antechriste_n which_o deni_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n write_v that_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o every_o tongue_n shall_v confess_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v jesus_n christ_n to_o the_o glory_n god_n the_o father_n 2.11_o philip._n 2.11_o c._n neither_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o father_n otherwise_o under_o the_o law_n for_o although_o they_o have_v a_o obscure_a sight_n of_o christ_n under_o shadow_n yet_o notwithstanding_o god_n never_o reveal_v himself_o without_o christ_n but_o now_o so_o soon_o as_o christ_n be_v exhibit_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v our_o king_n all_o the_o world_n ought_v to_o have_v submit_v itself_o unto_o he_o as_o unto_o god_n the_o father_n for_o see_v the_o father_n have_v command_v he_o to_o sit_v on_o his_o right_a hand_n whatsoever_o he_o be_v that_o imagine_v a_o god_n without_o christ_n he_o maym_v one_o half_a of_o he_o r._n but_o what_o honour_n be_v that_o which_o appertain_v to_o the_o son_n it_o follow_v 24._o very_o verylye_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_z that_o hear_v my_o word_n and_o beeleeve_v on_o he_o that_o send_v i_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o judgement_n but_o be_v escape_v from_o death_n to_o life_n very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o c._n here_o be_v express_v what_o manner_n of_o honour_n be_v require_v lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o the_o same_o consist_v in_o some_o external_a right_a only_a or_o in_o vain_a ceremony_n r._n for_o christ_n seek_v not_o external_a honour_n which_o superstitious_a man_n geve_v unto_o he_o but_o he_o seek_v for_o faith_n because_o to_o believe_v be_v to_o geve_v the_o great_a honour_n that_o may_v be_v to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n christ_n the_o gospel_n be_v the_o the_o sceptre_n of_o christ_n c._n whereupon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v as_o a_o sceptre_n unto_o christ_n by_o which_o he_o govern_v the_o faithful_a who_o the_o father_n have_v make_v subject_a unto_o he_o and_o this_o definition_n be_v first_o of_o all_o worthy_a to_o be_v note_v nothing_o be_v more_o usual_a and_o common_a than_o the_o false_a profession_n of_o christianisme_n for_o the_o papist_n which_o be_v the_o most_o swear_a enemy_n unto_o christ_n do_v notwithstanding_o too_o impudent_o brag_v and_o boast_v of_o his_o name_n but_o here_o christ_n require_v of_o we_o no_o other_o honour_n then_o that_o we_o shall_v obey_v his_o gospel_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o what_o honour_n soever_o hipocrit_n geve_v unto_o christ_n it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o judas_n kiss_n how_o often_o time_n soever_o they_o call_v he_o a_o king_n they_o do_v nothing_o but_o spoil_v he_o of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o power_n so_o long_o as_o they_o believe_v not_o the_o gospel_n m._n therefore_o he_o which_o hear_v not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o receive_v it_o not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n send_v into_o this_o world_n of_o the_o father_n for_o our_o salvation_n he_o it_o be_v which_o great_o dishonour_v the_o son_n and_o the_o father_n 4.44_o joh._n 4.44_o he_o say_v that_o a_o prophet_n be_v not_o without_o honour_n save_v in_o his_o own_o country_n it_o be_v a_o discredit_v to_o the_o prophet_n send_v of_o god_n if_o so_o be_v his_o word_n be_v not_o beléeve_v and_o in_o another_o place_n this_o discredit_n be_v say_v to_o be_v unbelief_n the_o which_o happen_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n among_o the_o nazarite_n r._n moreover_o 6.6_o mar._n 6.6_o because_o to_o believe_v seem_v to_o many_o to_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o easy_a in_o somuch_o that_o they_o think_v they_o believe_v when_o they_o only_o hear_v this_o name_n think_v that_o to_o believe_v be_v
christ_n cast_v in_o their_o tooth_n and_o yet_o they_o brag_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n even_o as_o if_o they_o have_v come_v out_o of_o god_n own_o bosom_n you_o have_v not_o hear_v his_o voice_n m._n because_o the_o jew_n challenge_v to_o themselves_o a_o certain_a singular_a and_o peculiar_a knoweldge_n of_o god_n above_o all_o other_o nation_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n because_o their_o forefather_n have_v hear_v his_o voice_n and_o because_o moses_n have_v talk_v with_o he_o face_n to_o face_n and_o have_v receyve_v the_o law_n from_o his_o mouth_n and_o for_o the_o opinion_n which_o they_o have_v conceyve_v of_o these_o man_n they_o do_v not_o only_o despise_v all_o other_o nation_n in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o but_o also_o careless_o reject_v the_o doctrine_n and_o admonition_n boath_n of_o john_n and_o also_o of_o christ_n the_o lord_n by_o these_o word_n most_o apt_o take_v away_o the_o opinion_n of_o divine_a knowledge_n which_o they_o think_v they_o have_v and_o plainelye_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v nothing_o but_o plain_a atheist_n that_o be_v to_o say_v without_o mind_n and_o feel_v of_o god_n and_o have_v no_o fellowship_n at_o all_o with_o he_o c._n for_o here_o be_v three_o metophoricall_a kind_n of_o speech_n by_o which_o he_o mean_v to_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v far_o from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n for_o as_o man_n make_v themselves_o know_v by_o continuance_n and_o by_o word_n even_o so_o god_n send_v forth_o his_o voice_n unto_o we_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o his_o prophet_n and_o have_v in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o it_o be_v take_v upon_o he_o a_o visible_a form_n that_o we_o may_v know_v he_o according_a to_o our_o capacity_n bu_n for_o as_o god_n by_o his_o nature_n be_v invisible_a for_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n so_o he_o be_v neither_o see_v with_o corporal_a eye_n 4.24_o ihu_n 4.24_o not_o yet_o clarefy_v nor_o yet_o hear_v with_o these_o corporal_a and_o corruptible_a ear_n nevertheless_o he_o geve_v unto_o his_o servant_n certain_a sign_n of_o his_o presence_n and_o speak_v unto_o man_n in_o such_o manner_n of_o speech_n as_o may_v be_v understand_v for_o so_o he_o appear_v and_o speak_v to_o the_o prophet_n m._n wherefore_o that_o which_o we_o read_v in_o deutronomy_n 4.10_o deu._n 4.10_o concern_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n which_o the_o israelite_n hear_v be_v no_o otherwise_o to_o be_v understand_v than_o that_o they_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o angel_n and_o not_o the_o proper_a voice_n of_o god_n a._n but_o when_o christ_n be_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n we_o have_v after_o a_o sort_n in_o he_o a_o visible_a image_n of_o the_o invisible_a father_n he_o himself_o say_v he_o which_o see_v i_o 14.9_o john_n 14.9_o see_v my_o father_n also_o c._n he_o therefore_o which_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v god_n in_o his_o lively_a and_o express_a image_n do_v sufficient_o thereby_o declare_v that_o he_o worship_v no_o god_n at_o all_o but_o a_o god_n of_o his_o own_o imagination_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n have_v a_o veil_n before_o their_o eye_n 3.14_o 2._o cor._n 3.14_o lest_o they_o shall_v behold_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n 38._o his_o word_n have_v you_o not_o abide_v in_o you_o for_o who_o he_o have_v send_v he_o you_o believe_v not_o m._n that_o be_v to_o say_v you_o neither_o understande_v his_o mind_n nor_o meaning_n neither_o have_v you_o graft_v and_o root_v in_o your_o heart_n his_o word_n which_o be_v give_v to_o your_o forefather_n neither_o do_v he_o simp_o say_v and_o you_o have_v not_o his_o word_n but_o he_o add_v this_o in_o you_o for_o otherwise_o they_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o book_n in_o their_o mouth_n and_o in_o their_o ear_n but_o in_o their_o heart_n they_o have_v it_o not_o c._n but_o this_o be_v the_o true_a profit_n when_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v root_n in_o we_o and_o abide_v in_o our_o heart_n for_o ever_o christ_n say_v that_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n have_v no_o place_n in_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o receyve_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o the_o same_o commend_v everye_o where_o and_o right_o he_o object_v this_o unto_o they_o for_o god_n have_v not_o speak_v by_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n in_o vain_a and_o the_o purpose_n of_o moses_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o call_v all_o man_n unto_o christ_n the_o right_a way_n whereupon_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o disciple_n of_o moses_n which_o reject_v christ_n m._n therefore_o christ_n speak_v here_o to_o the_o jew_n as_o he_o do_v in_o another_o place_n 8.9_o john_n 8.9_o you_o neither_o know_v i_o nor_o my_o father_n a._n also_o he_o say_v ●7_n john_n 8._o ●7_n you_o seek_v to_o kill_v i_o because_o my_o word_n have_v no_o place_n in_o you_o c._n for_o how_o can_v he_o have_v the_o word_n of_o life_n abide_v in_o he_o which_o repell_v the_o life_n itself_o how_o shall_v he_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o same_o which_o seek_v all_o that_o he_o can_v to_o destroy_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o law_n for_o the_o law_n without_o christ_n be_v imperfect_a and_o void_a the_o near_a therefore_o that_o a_o man_n come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n the_o more_o he_o have_v profit_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherefore_o how_o much_o soever_o the_o jew_n turk_n heretic_n and_o papist_n do_v boast_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o they_o reject_v he_o who_o the_o father_n have_v send_v and_o do_v not_o believe_v he_o their_o boast_n be_v in_o vain_a because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n abide_v in_o they_o 39_o search_v the_o scripture_n for_o in_o they_o you_o think_v you_o have_v eternal_a life_n and_o they_o be_v they_o which_o testify_v of_o i_o r._n the_o four_o testimony_n be_v bring_v from_o the_o scripture_n m._n the_o jew_n have_v the_o scripture_n name_o the_o law_n the_o prophet_n and_o the_o psalm_n of_o the_o which_o they_o do_v not_o a_o little_a brag_n as_o though_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o everlasting_a life_n simp_o to_o have_v and_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n divinelye_o inspire_v and_o not_o more_o necessary_a dyligent_o to_o read_v the_o same_o and_o to_o know_v and_o embrace_v by_o faith_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n promise_v in_o they_o in_o who_o alone_o all_o salvation_n and_o life_n consist_v c._n therefore_o christ_n here_o reprove_v their_o foolish_a boast_n because_o they_o profess_v that_o they_o have_v life_n in_o the_o scripture_n when_o as_o they_o take_v hold_v only_o on_o the_o dead_a letter_n for_o he_o do_v not_o simp_o reprehend_v we_o because_o we_o seek_v life_n in_o the_o scripture_n see_v they_o be_v provide_v and_o appoint_v to_o we_o for_o the_o same_o purpose_n for_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o life_n and_o salvation_n red_a the_o scripture_n ordain_v of_o all_o man_n to_o be_v red_a because_o they_o which_o read_v the_o scripture_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v instruct_v to_o salvation_n &_o shall_v find_v in_o deed_n in_o they_o everlasting_a life_n but_o he_o commend_v this_o that_o the_o jew_n think_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o quicken_v they_o when_o as_o they_o be_v far_o from_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n thereof_o may_v when_o they_o seek_v to_o suppress_v the_o light_n of_o life_n contain_v in_o they_o for_o how_o can_v the_o law_n bring_v life_n without_o christ_n who_o alone_o bring_v the_o same_o they_z therefore_o which_o read_v the_o scripture_n without_o faith_n in_o christ_n 3.9_o rom._n 7.7_o 2._o cor._n 3.9_o shall_v find_v nothing_o in_o they_o but_o the_o kill_n letter_n as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n teach_v moreover_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o place_n to_o seek_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n for_o they_o which_o imagine_v of_o christ_n what_o they_o list_v themselves_o shall_v have_v at_o the_o last_o nothing_o but_o a_o vain_a phantasye_a scripture_n christ_n know_v by_o the_o scripture_n first_o of_o all_o therefore_o let_v we_o note_n that_o christ_n can_v be_v true_o know_v by_o no_o other_o mean_n than_o by_o the_o scripture_n the_o which_o be_v so_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o must_v read_v the_o scripture_n with_o this_o mind_n that_o we_o may_v find_v christ_n there_o whosoever_o declyne_v from_o this_o scope_n and_o end_n how_o so_o ever_o he_o spend_v his_o whole_a life_n and_o weary_v himself_o in_o read_v he_o shall_v never_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n for_o what_o can_v we_o know_v and_o understand_v without_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n m._n the_o scripture_n be_v give_v to_o we_o from_o above_o not_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v
unthankful_a to_o god_n be_v stark_o blind_a at_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o power_n and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o they_o do_v disdain_n and_o contemn_v all_o the_o miracle_n which_o hitherto_o they_o have_v see_v because_o christ_n do_v not_o follow_v their_o will_n and_o because_o they_o do_v not_o find_v he_o such_o a_o one_o as_o they_o imagine_v he_o to_o be_v if_o they_o have_v be_v put_v in_o hope_n of_o earthly_a felicity_n they_o will_v daily_o have_v extol_v he_o and_o without_o all_o doubt_n have_v salute_v he_o by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o prophet_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o now_o because_o he_o reprehend_v they_o for_o that_o they_o be_v to_o carnal_o addict_v they_o think_v it_o good_a to_o hear_v he_o no_o more_o but_o do_v withstand_v he_o say_v what_o sign_n show_v thou_o that_o we_o may_v see_v and_o believe_v thou_o what_o do_v thou_o work_v bu_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v thou_o speak_v much_o in_o thy_o own_o commendation_n as_o though_o thou_o be_v send_v into_o the_o world_n to_o save_v and_o redeem_v mankind_n r._n thou_o require_v that_o we_o shall_v believe_v in_o thou_o as_o in_o the_o saviour_n send_v of_o god_n thou_o say_v that_o faith_n in_o thou_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o food_n of_o everlasting_a life_n be_v get_v but_o do_v thou_o think_v we_o so_o senseless_a and_o foolish_a that_o thou_o speak_v these_o thing_n we_o will_v straight_o way_n believe_v thou_o and_o reverence_v thou_o alone_o and_o forsake_v moses_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n by_o what_o sign_n by_o what_o miracle_n do_v thou_o confirm_v the_o authority_n of_o thy_o doctrine_n bu_n but_o if_o thou_o be_v that_o manner_n of_o man_n which_o thou_o will_v seem_v and_o be_v account_v to_o be_v show_v this_o unto_o we_o by_o some_o heavenlye_a sign_n by_o which_o we_o be_v convict_v as_o by_o invincible_a argument_n we_o may_v now_o boldelye_o receyve_v thou_o and_o may_v believe_v thou_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n b._n to_o believe_v here_o signifi_v wholye_a to_o depend_v upon_o he_o who_o thou_o beléeve_v so_o also_o the_o people_n béeléeve_v moses_n 14.31_o exo._n 14.31_o m._n here_o we_o see_v the_o disposition_n of_o carnal_a man_n who_o so_o long_o as_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v require_v be_v enemy_n of_o the_o which_o we_o have_v experience_n in_o many_o at_o this_o day_n c._n for_o in_o the_o beginning_n gospelere_n carnal_a gospelere_n because_o they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o christ_n will_v be_v favourable_a to_o their_o sin_n they_o earnest_o receyve_v his_o gospel_n and_o require_v no_o probation_n of_o the_o same_o but_o when_o they_o be_v call_v to_o deny_v themselves_o and_o to_o bear_v the_o cross_n than_o they_o begin_v to_o forsake_v christ_n and_o to_o demand_v from_o whence_o the_o gospel_n have_v his_o beginning_n to_o be_v short_a christ_n be_v no_o more_o their_o master_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o deny_v their_o desire_n m._n othersome_a require_v miracle_n as_o though_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o sufficient_o prove_v all_o ready_a boath_n by_o miracle_n &_o also_o by_o the_o sciptur_n a._n but_o wisdom_n be_v justify_v of_o her_o chrildren_n 31._o our_o father_n do_v eat_v manna_n in_o the_o wilderness_n as_o it_o be_v write_v he_o give_v they_o bread_n from_o heaven_n b._n hereby_o it_o appear_v what_o these_o man_n seek_v for_o namely_o that_o they_o may_v wander_v up_o and_o down_o with_o the_o lord_n id_o and_o be_v feed_v of_o he_o without_o labour_n even_o as_o the_o people_n long_o before_o have_v be_v feed_v in_o the_o wilderness_n forty_o year_n with_o manna_n c._n therefore_o our_o saviour_n christ_n gaul_v they_o when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o come_v like_a to_o brute_n beast_n to_o fill_v their_o belly_n for_o they_o bewray_v this_o their_o gross_a affection_n when_o they_o require_v such_o a_o messiah_n as_o may_v feed_v they_o m._n this_o be_v another_o argument_n of_o their_o witstandinge_a christ_n they_z object_n moses_n and_o the_o father_n and_o they_o pretend_v their_o authority_n to_o cloak_n their_o incredulity_n withal_o as_o contrary_a to_o that_o faith_n which_o christ_n require_v to_o be_v in_o he_o b._n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v what_o work_v thou_o that_o we_o may_v believe_v thy_o thy_o word_n thou_o have_v once_o feed_v five_o thousand_o of_o we_o with_o five_o loaf_n and_o two_o fish_n but_o moses_n feed_v six_o hundeder_v thousand_o of_o our_o father_n or_o there_o abouts_o with_o bread_n from_o heaven_n for_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o year_n but_o as_o yet_o thou_o have_v show_v we_o no_o such_o sign_n it_o be_v better_a therefore_o that_o we_o be_v moses_n disciple_n than_o thy_o disciple_n and_o to_o depend_v upon_o his_o word_n than_o of_o thou_o c._n but_o whereas_o they_o extol_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o the_o manna_n that_o they_o do_v very_o subtle_o to_o overthrow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o he_o commend_v the_o moderate_a desire_n of_o corporal_a meat_n for_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n they_o do_v oppose_v the_o glorious_a name_n of_o manna_n which_o be_v call_v bread_n from_o heaven_n and_o angel_n food_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o call_v manna_n bread_n from_o heaven_n although_o god_n fyll_n the_o belly_n of_o his_o people_n as_o man_n fill_v hog_n give_v they_o no_o better_a thing_n therefore_o they_o have_v no_o excuse_n at_o all_o when_o they_o do_v wicked_o reject_v the_o spiritual_a food_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o god_n now_o offer_v to_o they_o m._n for_o moses_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v why_o the_o lord_n do_v feed_v the_o people_n with_o manna_n say_v and_o he_o give_v thou_o manna_n to_o eat_v which_o neither_o thou_o nor_o thy_o father_n know_v to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v show_v to_o thou_o that_o man_n shall_v not_o live_v by_o bread_n only_o but_o by_o everye_o word_n which_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god._n b._n manna_n be_v call_v the_o bread_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o angel_n because_o it_o rain_v from_o heaven_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n a._n there_o be_v some_o which_o interpret_v this_o to_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o prince_n or_o of_o great_a man_n because_o of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n which_o in_o another_o place_n signify_v prince_n and_o noble_a man_n 32._o then_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o moses_n give_v you_o not_o that_o bread_n from_o heaven_n but_o my_o father_n give_v you_o the_o true_a bread_n from_o heaven_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o bu_n the_o lord_n know_v well_o enough_o how_o filthy_a their_o affection_n be_v answer_v nothing_o to_o the_o sign_n which_o they_o require_v partly_o because_o he_o come_v not_o to_o fill_v the_o belly_n of_o the_o hungary_n nor_o to_o play_v pageant_n before_o every_o one_o 23.9_o luk._n 23.9_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n also_o he_o make_v no_o answer_n to_o herod_n and_o partly_o because_o the_o day_n before_o he_o have_v show_v so_o manifest_a a_o sign_n to_o the_o people_n that_o there_o need_v not_o the_o repetition_n of_o many_o word_n the_o lord_n have_v prove_v by_o that_o sign_n that_o he_o be_v the_o same_o prophet_n who_o hitherto_o the_o father_n have_v look_v for_o and_o the_o very_a same_o man_n which_o in_o this_o place_n require_v a_o sign_n confess_v then_o that_o truth_n which_o now_o they_o doubt_n of_o for_o they_o have_v say_v this_o be_v very_o that_o prophet_n which_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o world_n wherefore_o he_o fare_v as_o thoug_a he_o do_v not_o see_v the_o rudeness_n of_o the_o multitude_n their_o ingratitude_n inconstancy_n and_o their_o malice_n go_v about_o by_o pure_a symplicity_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o true_a and_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n m._n and_o because_o he_o know_v that_o this_o people_n do_v to_o much_o hang_v upon_o moses_n as_o though_o he_o have_v give_v to_o the_o father_n those_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o life_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o ryghtlye_o judge_v of_o the_o miracle_n of_o manna_n nor_o truelye_o understande_v that_o celestial_a bread_n much_o less_o desire_v the_o same_o he_o use_v a_o earnest_a asseveration_n but_o christ_n seem_v to_o deny_v that_o which_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o the_o psalm_n yet_o it_o be_v otherwise_o for_o he_o speak_v only_o by_o comparison_n the_o bread_n of_o heaven_n be_v call_v manna_n which_o nourish_v the_o body_n only_o but_o that_o be_v truelye_o and_o proper_o judge_v to_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o spiritual_a nutriment_n of_o the_o soul_n therefore_o christ_n here_o oppose_v the_o world_n against_o heaven_n because_o the_o incorruptible_a
life_n be_v only_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god._n moreover_o truth_n in_o this_o place_n be_v not_o compare_v with_o figure_n as_o oftentimes_o else_o where_o it_o be_v but_o christ_n respect_v what_o be_v the_o true_a life_n of_o man_n name_o by_o which_o he_o differ_v from_o brute_n beast_n and_o by_o which_o he_o excel_v among_o creature_n bu_n moses_n true_o give_v corporal_a meat_n which_o nourish_v man_n body_n and_o not_o their_o soul_n preserve_v the_o life_n natural_a but_o nothing_o profit_v the_o life_n spiritual_a neither_o come_v the_o same_o ●ut_v of_o heaven_n but_o rain_v only_o out_o of_o the_o cloud_n but_o my_o father_n give_v you_o c._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o manna_n which_o moses_n give_v do_v profit_v nothing_o to_o heavenly_a life_n but_o now_o the_o true_a bread_n of_o heaven_n be_v offer_v to_o you_o a._n before_o he_o have_v say_v which_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v give_v unto_o you_o and_o now_o he_o make_v the_o father_n rather_o author_n of_o this_o gift_n than_o himself_o but_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o same_o be_v give_v by_o his_o hand_n so_o the_o antithesis_fw-la or_o comparison_n be_v not_o béetwéene_a god_n and_o moses_n but_o between_o moses_n and_o christ_n but_o christ_n name_v the_o father_n here_o for_o more_o reverence_n sake_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v acknowledge_v i_o to_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n by_o who_o hand_n he_o will_v feed_v your_o soul_n to_o everlasting_a life_n bu_n for_o the_o father_n send_v the_o son_n into_o the_o earth_n for_o thk_v accomplish_v of_o man_n salvation_n so_o that_o no_o creature_n can_v give_v the_o true_a bread_n of_o life_n to_o man_n so_o impossible_a it_o be_v that_o moses_n shall_v give_v the_o same_o by_o corporal_a meat_n 10_o 2._o cor._n 10_o c._n but_o this_o seem_v to_o disagree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n for_o the_o apostle_n call_v man_n spiritual_a food_n but_o we_o answer_v christ_n speak_v here_o according_a to_o their_o capasitie_n with_o who_o he_o have_v to_o do_v 4.11_o rom._n 4.11_o neither_o be_v this_o unwoonted_a and_o siledome_n find_v in_o the_o scripture_n we_o see_v how_o diverselye_o paul_n himself_o speak_v of_o circumsition_n when_o he_o handele_v the_o institution_n of_o the_o same_o he_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o faith_n but_o when_o he_o contend_v with_o false_a apostle_n he_o rather_o make_v it_o the_o seal_n of_o malediction_n let_v we_o here_o consider_v what_o be_v object_v to_o christ_n name_o that_o he_o be_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o messiah_n except_o he_o do_v supply_v the_o want_n of_o corporal_a food_n therefore_o he_o do_v not_o set_v before_o their_o eye_n of_o what_o thing_n man_n be_v a_o figure_n but_o deny_v this_o to_o be_v the_o true_a bread_n with_o the_o which_o moses_n fill_v man_n belly_n 33._o for_o the_o bread_n of_o god_n be_v he_o which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o give_v life_n to_o the_o world_n for_o the_o bread_n of_o god_n be_v he_o bu_n now_o more_o playnelye_o and_o full_o he_o explayn_v that_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v even_o now_o concern_v the_o breeade_n c._n and_o he_o reason_v thus_o the_o same_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o heaven_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o geve_v life_n to_o this_o world_n in_o manna_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n therefore_o the_o same_o be_v not_o the_o heavenly_a bread_n nevertheless_o he_o confirm_v that_o which_o he_o say_v before_o that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n to_o feed_v man_n after_o a_o far_o more_o excellent_a manner_n then_o moses_n do_v kingdom_n manna_n descend_v not_o from_o god_n kingdom_n man_n descend_v from_o the_o visible_a heaven_n that_o be_v to_o say_v out_o of_o the_o cloud_n but_o not_o from_o the_o everlasting_a kingdom_n of_o god_n from_o whence_o life_n flow_v unto_o we_o wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a bread_n of_o heaven_n as_o be_v this_o bread_n who_o god_n send_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n he_o call_v now_o that_o the_o bread_n of-god_n which_o before_o he_o call_v the_o bread_n of_o heaven_n not_o that_o the_o same_o procee_v from_o any_o other_o then_o from_o god_n who_o sustain_v we_o with_o bread_n in_o this_o present_a life_n but_o because_o he_o be_v judge_v divine_a which_o quicken_v soul_n to_o bless_a immortality_n b._n for_o this_o bread_n be_v god_n who_o alone_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o by_o he_o and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o father_n feed_v to_o life_n that_o be_v to_o say_v cause_v man_n to_o live_v for_o ever_o in_o bliss_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n c._n in_o the_o descendinge_a from_o heaven_n two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v noated_a first_o that_o we_o have_v divine_a life_n in_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v come_v from_o god_n that_o he_o may_v be_v to_o we_o the_o author_n of_o life_n second_o because_o the_o celestial_a life_n be_v never_o unto_o we_o insomuche_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o need_v neither_o to_o ascend_v above_o the_o cloud_n nor_o sail_n over_o the_o sea_n to_o seek_v the_o same_o for_o therefore_o christ_n descend_v to_o we_o because_o no_o man_n can_v assende_v to_o he_o and_o give_v life_n to_o the_o world_n this_o place_n teach_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v dead_a to_o god_n christ_n life_n only_a in_o christ_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o same_o be_v not_o quicken_v by_o christ_n because_o life_n shall_v never_o be_v find_v in_o any_o other_o than_o in_o he_o so_o that_o here_o all_o manner_n of_o worship_n belong_v boath_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o also_o to_o the_o gentile_n be_v reject_v all_o the_o philosophye_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o all_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o jew_n with_o the_o whole_a law_n have_v no_o manner_n of_o power_n to_o quicken_v otherwise_o god_n have_v send_v his_o son_n in_o vain_a which_o be_v this_o heavenlye_a bread_n to_o quicken_v and_o to_o save_v the_o world_n m._n all_o man_n here_o for_o the_o most_o part_n by_o this_o word_n world_n understande_v the_o elect_a even_o as_o they_o do_v in_o this_o place_n also_o 16._o john_n 3_o 16._o so_o god_n love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v life_n everlasting_a 34_o then_o say_v they_o unto_o he_o lord_n evermore_o give_v we_o this_o bread_n c._n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o they_o speak_v ironic_a that_o be_v to_o say_v meaning_n the_o contrary_n thereby_o to_o note_n christ_n of_o vanity_n because_o he_o boast_v that_o he_o will_v geve_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n m._n as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o gainsay_v this_o bread_n of_o the_o which_o thou_o speak_v that_o we_o desire_v always_o to_o receyve_v the_o same_o of_o thou_o that_o we_o may_v never_o die_v but_o live_v for_o ever_o r._n very_o if_o thou_o will_v ever_o geve_v we_o this_o bread_n we_o will_v then_o acount_v thou_o to_o be_v that_o great_a messiah_n and_o will_v worship_v thou_o for_o christ_n for_o if_o thou_o will_v perform_v that_o which_o thou_o do_v promise_v we_o shall_v prosper_v well_o we_o shall_v not_o sweat_v with_o labour_n but_o shall_v live_v in_o most_o pleasant_a ease_n but_o can_v thou_o give_v that_o to_o we_o which_o thou_o thyself_o want_v thou_o promise_v bread_n of_o life_n and_o yet_o thou_o want_v boath_n a_o garner_n and_o wheat_n to_o bake_v corporal_a bread_n with_o all_o how_o then_o can_v thou_o give_v we_o that_o more_o precious_a bread_n bu_n after_o this_o manner_n speak_v the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n lord_n give_v i_o this_o water_n that_o i_o thirst_v not_o nor_o come_v hither_o to_o draw_v even_o so_o flesh_n and_o blood_n deride_v the_o gospel_n because_o the_o same_o be_v in_o outward_a show_n very_o base_a and_o contemptible_a promise_v all_o everlasting_a goodness_n when_o as_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o suffer_v the_o faithful_a to_o hunger_n to_o thirst_n to_o pine_v with_o cold_a to_o be_v banish_v and_o to_o be_v slay_v 4.23_o mat._n 27.42_o luk._n 4.23_o so_o also_o it_o be_v say_v to_o christ_n he_o save_v other_o but_o himself_o he_o can_v not_o save_v and_o in_o another_o place_n physician_n heal_v thyself_o even_o so_o wicked_a man_n when_o they_o reject_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v not_o content_a with_o this_o one_o wickedness_n make_v christ_n the_o cause_n and_o author_n of_o their_o infidelity_n 35._o and_o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o shall_v not_o hunger_n and_o he_o that_o beleve_v on_o i_o shall_v never_o thirst_v i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n
lord_n declare_v that_o it_o be_v no_o strange_a thing_n to_o he_o that_o the_o capernaite_v see_v do_v not_o see_v and_o believe_v in_o he_o he_o come_v for_o no_o other_o cause_n into_o this_o world_n than_o for_o their_o sake_n who_o the_o father_n have_v ordain_v to_o everlasting_a life_n and_o have_v deliver_v to_o he_o to_o be_v save_v and_o he_o be_v most_o sertain_o sure_a of_o this_o that_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o he_o and_o that_o he_o will_v reject_v none_o of_o they_o but_o will_v willing_o embrace_v everye_o on_o of_o they_o but_o as_o for_o other_o he_o will_v not_o regard_v they_o and_o thus_o he_o show_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o capernaite_n do_v not_o believe_v in_o he_o namely_o because_o they_o be_v not_o give_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n c._n therefore_o lest_o their_o unbeléefe_n shall_v derogate_v any_o thing_n from_o his_o doctrine_n he_o say_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o so_o great_a obstinacy_n be_v for_o that_o they_o be_v reprobate_n and_o none_o of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n for_o this_o purpose_n therefore_o he_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o elect_a and_o the_o reprobate_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o doctrine_n may_v stand_v nevertheless_o although_o many_o beleve_v not_o the_o same_o for_o the_o wicked_a do_v detract_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o do_v esteem_v the_o same_o as_o nothing_o because_o they_o be_v not_o touch_v with_o the_o reverence_n thereof_o and_o a_o great_a many_o weak_a and_o ignorant_a man_n do_v doubt_n whether_o that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o no_o which_o be_v reject_v of_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o this_o stumble_a block_n christ_n provide_v when_o he_o deny_v those_o to_o be_v his_o which_o believe_v not_o if_o to_o such_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v unsavoury_a it_o be_v no_o marvel_n but_o all_o the_o child_n of_o god_n embrace_v the_o same_o first_o of_o all_o we_o gather_v out_o of_o this_o place_n that_o the_o benefit_n of_o faith_n come_v of_o the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n the_o father_n not_o of_o human_a strengthe_n whomesoever_o the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o the_o son_n come_v to_o the_o son_n c._n therefore_o faith_n be_v not_o in_o the_o will_n of_o man_n that_o this_o or_o that_o man_n may_v believe_v without_o exception_n god_n faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v by_o chance_n but_o god_n choose_v they_o who_o he_o delyver_v to_o the_o son_n as_o it_o be_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n for_o when_o he_o say_v all_o that_o be_v give_v we_o may_v gather_v that_o all_o be_v not_o give_v moreover_o we_o gather_v that_o god_n do_v work_v in_o his_o elect_a with_o so_o great_a efficacy_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o none_o of_o they_o do_v fall_v away_o from_o he_o for_o this_o word_n of_o geve_v be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o christ_n have_v say_v those_o who_o the_o father_n have_v choose_v he_o do_v regenerate_v and_o addict_v they_o to_o i_o in_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o gospel_n bu_n they_o therefore_o which_o believe_v believe_v through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o they_o which_o believe_v not_o have_v to_o accuse_v their_o own_o wickedness_n and_o not_o to_o find_v fault_n with_o god_n grace_n salvation_n come_v through_o grace_n those_o who_o the_o father_n will_v have_v save_v he_o geve_v to_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n receive_v they_o and_o the_o father_n geve_v when_o he_o drive_v &_o frame_v the_o will_n and_o affection_n of_o man_n and_o geve_v they_o power_n and_o strength_n to_o believe_v the_o word_n and_o miracle_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n the_o son_n receive_v when_o he_o friendly_a entertayn_v all_o those_o that_o come_v to_o he_o and_o join_v they_o to_o himself_o and_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v 8.30_o rom._n 8.30_o those_o who_o he_o have_v predestinate_a he_o have_v call_v and_o who_o he_o have_v call_v he_o have_v justify_v and_o who_o he_o have_v justify_v he_o have_v also_o glorify_v m._n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_n that_o christ_n speak_v hear_v not_o according_a to_o that_o dyvine_a majesty_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o eternal_a word_n to_o the_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v give_v that_o it_o have_v not_o but_o accord_v to_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o mediation_n reconciliation_n and_o human_a redemtion_n which_o he_o have_v take_v in_o hand_n for_o the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o his_o son_n as_o to_o a_o mediator_n reconcilor_n &_o redeemer_n out_o of_o that_o sinful_a multitude_n of_o mortal_a man_n those_o to_o be_v savid_n who_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o life_n from_o everlasting_a a_o we_o have_v already_o show_v what_o it_o be_v to_o come_v unto_o christ_n m._n for_o we_o must_v not_o understand_v that_o which_o he_o here_o speak_v of_o every_o one_o which_o come_v unto_o he_o for_o the_o unbeléeve_a capernaite_n come_v unto_o he_o who_o notwitstandinge_v the_o father_n have_v not_o give_v to_o he_o otherwise_o they_o have_v beleve_v in_o he_o but_o he_o speak_v of_o those_o which_o come_v to_o he_o as_o to_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o to_o the_o know_a savioure_n reveal_v by_o the_o father_n concern_v those_o i_o say_v he_o say_v and_o he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o i_o cast_v not_o away_o c._n the_o which_o also_o partayn_v to_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o godly_a that_o they_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o they_o have_v free_a access_n unto_o christ_n and_o shall_v be_v gentle_o receyve_v so_o soon_o as_o they_o commit_v themselves_o to_o his_o faith_n and_o charge_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v healtful_a to_o those_o that_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n because_o no_o man_n offer_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o disciple_n unto_o christ_n but_o he_o which_o feel_v he_o and_o have_v experience_n that_o he_o be_v a_o faithful_a teacher_n a._n this_o place_n therefore_o agree_v with_o that_o which_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o 18.47_o joh._n 18.47_o he_o which_o be_v of_o god_n hear_v god_n word_n therefore_o you_o do_v not_o hear_v because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o god_n again_o 10.26_o joh._n 10.26_o my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o follow_v i_o therefore_o you_o do_v not_o believe_v 13.48_o act_n 13.48_o because_o you_o be_v none_o of_o my_o sheep_n m._n for_o we_o read_v that_o they_o believe_v the_o word_n so_o many_o as_o be_v ordain_v to_o everlasting_a life_n b._n they_o therefore_o which_o be_v abject_n to_o the_o world_n and_o be_v despise_v as_o dust_n may_v be_v of_o good_a courage_n for_o christ_n will_v love_o receive_v they_o if_o so_o be_v they_o come_v to_o he_o in_o faith_n for_o he_o cast_v none_o away_o that_o come_v to_o he_o in_o faith_n he_o preserve_v he_o to_o the_o end_n 10.18_o joh._n 10.18_o &_o they_o shall_v never_o perish_v m._n for_o they_o be_v citizen_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o household_n of_o god_n wherefore_o they_o can_v never_o be_v exclude_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o see_v it_o be_v know_v to_o god_n alone_o who_o they_o be_v that_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n to_o be_v savid_n and_o who_o not_o 2_o ephe._n 2_o for_o the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v his_o yet_o notwitstand_v no_o man_n can_v be_v ignorant_a whether_o he_o come_v unto_o christ_n by_o fay_v and_o with_o a_o desire_n of_o heavenly_a grace_n 2.19_o 2._o tim._n 2.19_o or_o not_o for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o evident_a and_o manifest_a to_o our_o heart_n than_o that_o which_o our_o heart_n most_o of_o all_o desier_v 13.5_o 2._o cor._n 13.5_o whereupon_o the_o apostle_n say_v try_v and_o prove_v yourselves_o whether_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n or_o no._n do_v you_o not_o know_v yourselves_o whether_o christ_n jesus_n be_v in_o you_o so_o that_o we_o be_v make_v sure_a by_o that_o which_o be_v manifest_a concern_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o as_o whether_o the_o father_n have_v give_v we_o to_o the_o son_n and_o whether_o the_o son_n will_v cast_v we_o away_o or_o no._n if_o we_o come_v to_o chest_n no_o doubt_n we_o be_v give_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n and_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v cast_v away_o b._n but_o see_v none_o can_v be_v persuade_v of_o these_o thing_n but_o the_o elect_v that_o be_v to_o say_v such_o as_o be_v endue_v with_o god_n spirit_n and_o be_v regenerate_v who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v bring_v to_o security_n and_o sloth_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o these_o thing_n that_o nothing_o can_v so_o much_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o to_o every_o good_a work_n it_o be_v plain_a enough_o that_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o say_v which_o affirm_v that_o these_o thing_n ought_v not_o to_o
be_v open_o preach_v whereas_o the_o more_o every_o one_o know_v and_o feel_v the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o he_o the_o more_o he_o will_v love_v he_o again_o if_o the_o reprobate_n be_v offend_v with_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o at_o the_o which_o they_o be_v not_o offend_v 38._o for_o i_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n not_o to_o do_v that_o i_o will_v but_o what_o he_o will_v which_o have_v send_v i_o this_o be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o sentence_n go_v before_o because_o christ_n be_v not_o seek_v of_o we_o in_o vain_a for_o faith_n be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n by_o which_o he_o declare_v that_o we_o be_v his_o and_o have_v appoint_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o worker_n of_o our_o salvation_n but_o the_o son_n seek_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o fulfil_v the_o will_n and_o commandment_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n he_o will_v never_o therefore_o reject_v those_o which_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o our_o faith_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a m._n but_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o his_o own_o will_n but_o the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n we_o must_v not_o wicked_o stretch_v the_o same_o as_o heretic_n do_v but_o must_v simple_o understand_v it_o in_o that_o scence_n in_o the_o which_o it_o be_v speak_v c._n for_o it_o be_v a_o imitation_n by_o which_o christ_n do_v frame_v himself_o to_o his_o hearer_n b._n for_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o son_n have_v not_o his_o will_n by_o himself_o but_o his_o will_n and_o his_o father_n will_n be_v all_o one_o look_v what_o the_o father_n will_v the_o son_n will_v the_o same_o m._n therefore_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o say_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o he_o be_v wholye_a addict_v to_o the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o same_o he_o will_v save_v those_o which_o come_v unto_o he_o lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n do_v here_o by_o man_n a._n but_o concern_v this_o kind_n of_o speech_n we_o have_v speak_v before_o in_o the_o fifte_a chapter_n and_o in_o the_o nintéene_a verse_n 39_o and_o this_o be_v the_o father_n will_n which_o have_v send_v i_o that_o of_o all_o which_o he_o have_v give_v i_o i_o shall_v loose_v nothing_o but_o raise_v it_o up_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o this_o be_v the_o father_n m._n because_o it_o be_v obscure_a and_o unknowen_a to_o the_o people_n what_o be_v that_o will_n of_o god_n for_o the_o execute_n whereof_o he_o say_v he_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n he_o do_v more_o plain_o explicat_fw-la the_o same_o say_n and_o this_o be_v the_o father_n will_n etc._n etc._n c._n by_o which_o word_n he_o do_v testify_v that_o this_o be_v the_o purpose_n of_o his_o father_n that_o the_o faithful_a may_v find_v assure_v salvation_n in_o christ_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v again_o that_o they_o be_v reprobat_n which_o profit_v not_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n wherefore_o if_o we_o see_v that_o to_o many_o it_o tourn_v to_o their_o destruction_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v be_v discourage_v because_o they_o willing_o bring_v evel_a upon_o themselves_o let_v it_o suffice_v we_o that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v prevail_v always_o to_o gather_v together_o the_o elect_v to_o salvation_n i_o shall_v loose_v no_o thing_n m._n this_o be_v the_o exposition_n of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v i_o will_v not_o cast_v away_o so_o that_o our_o salvation_n be_v so_o commit_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o only_o perish_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a we_o can_v perish_v with_o our_o own_o harm_n but_o also_o by_o his_o transgression_n therefore_o as_o christ_n can_v play_v by_o collusion_n and_o transgress_v his_o father_n will_n so_o he_o can_v destroy_v those_o who_o he_o have_v receyve_v of_o the_o father_n to_o save_v c._n but_o he_o do_v not_o mean_a that_o he_o be_v the_o keeper_n of_o our_o salvation_n for_o one_o day_n or_o for_o a_o time_n but_o that_o he_o have_v care_n for_o the_o same_o even_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v at_o the_o last_o bring_v we_o out_o of_o prison_n even_o to_o the_o haven_n of_o rest_n and_o peace_n b._n for_o because_o in_o the_o last_o day_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n our_o consummation_n be_v look_v for_o this_o say_n of_o our_o savioure_n christ_n be_v right_o understand_v of_o the_o last_o resurrection_n c._n and_o this_o promise_n be_v more_o than_o necessary_a to_o such_o as_o be_v in_o misery_n in_o this_o infirmity_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o which_o every_o one_o of_o we_o feel_v and_o know_v well_o enough_o every_o moment_n very_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n may_v be_v make_v void_a and_o of_o none_o effect_n if_o so_o be_v the_o faithful_a be_v hold_v up_o by_o christ_n hand_n do_v not_o bold_o look_v for_o the_o day_n of_o resurrection_n for_o another_o cause_n also_o he_o make_v mention_v of_o the_o resurrection_n because_o so_o long_o as_o our_o life_n be_v hide_v we_o be_v like_a unto_o dead_a man_n for_o what_o do_v the_o faithful_a dyfferre_fw-la from_o the_o wicked_a but_o only_o that_o they_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o misery_n godly_a the_o day_n of_o resurrection_n ●is_n comfort_n to_o the_o godly_a and_o be_v as_o sheep_n appoint_v to_o be_v slay_v have_v always_o one_o foot_n in_o the_o grave_n yea_o and_o be_v very_o never_o to_o be_v swallow_v up_o of_o death_n there_o remain_v therefore_o one_o pillar_n to_o hope_n and_o patience_n if_o so_o be_v we_o omit_v the_o state_n of_o this_o present_a life_n do_v behold_v and_o consider_v that_o last_o day_n and_o do_v pass_v by_o the_o mynifolde_a let_v of_o this_o world_n until_o the_o fruete_n of_o faith_n do_v appear_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n m._n let_v we_o also_o note_n that_o the_o general_a resurrection_n do_v depend_v upon_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o be_v of_o all_o thing_n most_o sertaine_a therefore_o as_o impossible_a it_o be_v that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v make_v frustrate_a and_o that_o the_o perfect_a salvation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o depend_v upon_o god_n will_v shall_v be_v by_o any_o manner_n of_o mean_n hynder_v as_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o resurrection_n which_o christ_n say_v he_o will_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o his_o power_n when_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o will_v raise_v up_o the_o faithful_a for_o there_o be_v no_o other_o appoint_v to_o be_v the_o executor_n of_o his_o father_n will_n but_o this_o christ_n alone_o who_o shall_v full_o perform_v and_o finish_v this_o our_o redemption_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o death_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n insomuche_o that_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v a_o perfect_a savioure_n we_o also_o shall_v be_v full_o and_o perfect_o redeem_v of_o the_o which_o redemtion_n he_o speak_v in_o another_o place_n say_v when_o you_o shall_v see_v these_o thing_n look_v up_o and_o lift_v up_o your_o head_n for_o your_o redemtion_n draw_v never_o a._n and_o although_o the_o reprobate_n shall_v rise_v again_o in_o their_o body_n as_o well_o as_o the_o elect_v of_o god_n yet_o nevertheless_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o large_a difference_n between_o they_o as_o it_o be_v show_v in_o the_o five_o chapter_n go_v before_o m._n we_o be_v also_o admonish_v that_o there_o be_v and_o end_v appoint_v for_o this_o present_a world_n when_o we_o here_o mention_v make_v of_o the_o latter_a day_n which_o notwithstanding_o mocker_n and_o contemner_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n account_n for_o a_o fable_n 40_o and_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o that_o every_o on_o which_o see_v the_o son_n and_o believe_v one_o he_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n m._n there_o be_v nothing_o superfluous_a in_o this_o repetition_n if_o so_o be_v thou_o right_o consider_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v c._n he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o office_n of_o defend_v of_o our_o salvation_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n now_o also_o he_o show_v the_o manner_n how_o this_o therefore_o be_v the_o way_n to_o obtain_v salvation_n if_o so_o be_v we_o obey_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n he_o touch_v this_o even_o now_o but_o now_o again_o he_o do_v better_a express_v that_o which_o before_o he_o have_v speak_v somewhat_o obscure_o m._n and_o he_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v give_v to_o he_o of_o his_o father_n which_o believe_v in_o he_o r._n for_o in_o save_v man_n god_n observe_v this_o order_n and_o do_v thus_o manifest_a that_o eternal_a election_n by_o
flesh_n which_o he_o will_v give_v to_o the_o death_n this_o very_o be_v that_o which_o trouble_v they_o offend_v they_o and_o draw_v they_o away_o from_o the_o lord_n and_o give_v they_o occasion_n to_o murmur_v dally_v therefore_o with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n they_o wrest_v the_o same_o to_o another_o scence_n than_o he_o speak_v the_o same_o 53._o jesus_n therefore_o say_v unto_o they_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o c._n deep_a displeasure_n move_v our_o saviour_n christ_n at_o this_o time_n to_o swear_v when_o he_o see_v his_o grace_n with_o such_o proud_a contempt_n to_o be_v reject_v for_o he_o do_v not_o use_v now_o simple_a doctrine_n but_o to_o terrify_v they_o mingle_v threaten_n therewith_o for_o he_o denownce_v everlasting_a destruction_n to_o all_o which_o shall_v refuse_v to_o seek_v for_o &_o to_o receyve_v life_n from_o his_o flesh_n bu_n and_o that_o which_o they_o say_v be_v absurd_a and_o impossible_a to_o be_v do_v that_o he_o prove_v to_o be_v most_o necessary_a but_o in_o sound_n scence_n and_o not_o in_o that_o carnal_a and_o gross_a scence_n c._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o you_o contemn_v my_o flesh_n know_v you_o for_o a_o surety_n that_o there_o remain_v to_o you_o no_o other_o hope_n of_o life_n this_o vengeance_n hang_v over_o the_o head_n of_o all_o such_o as_o be_v contemner_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o and_o their_o pride_n shall_v perish_v together_o and_o they_o be_v to_o be_v urge_v with_o this_o precise_a severity_n lest_o they_o proceed_v in_o flatter_a themselves_o for_o if_o so_o be_v we_o threaten_v death_n to_o the_o sick_a which_o despise_v remedy_n by_o physic_n provide_v what_o shall_v we_o say_v or_o do_v to_o the_o wicked_a who_o seek_v to_o abolishe_v life_n so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n b._n he_o call_v himself_o here_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o strong_o confound_v that_o false_a judgement_n which_o they_o have_v of_o he_o for_o in_o that_o he_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o man_n and_o base_a in_o outward_a show_n they_o think_v he_o to_o be_v mad_a and_o out_o of_o his_o wit_n to_o arrogate_v unto_o himself_o so_o much_o therefore_o he_o acknowledge_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n a_o vile_a and_o abject_a man_n but_o yet_o to_o show_v herewithal_o what_o lie_v hide_v in_o the_o contemn_a and_o abject_a show_n of_o his_o manhood_n he_o deny_v any_o man_n to_o have_v eternal_a life_n which_o do_v not_o eat_v of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o have_v not_o christ_n live_v in_o he_o be_v assure_v that_o he_o be_v redeem_v by_o his_o sacrifice_n and_o make_v the_o son_n and_o heir_n of_o god_n c._n the_o scence_n therefore_o be_v this_o contemn_v i_o as_o you_o listen_v the_o base_a and_z and_o abject_a show_n of_o my_o flesh_n yet_o notwithstanding_o life_n be_v include_v in_o this_o contemptible_a flesh_n of_o the_o which_o if_o you_o deprive_v yourselves_o you_o shall_v find_v nothing_o else_o where_o to_o quicken_v you_o it_o be_v a_o gross_a error_n of_o the_o father_n which_o think_v that_o infant_n be_v deprive_v of_o everlasting_a life_n except_o they_o give_v unto_o they_o the_o eucharist_n for_o there_o be_v no_o word_n here_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o christ_n go_v forward_o in_o the_o metaphor_n of_o the_o eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o the_o drink_n of_o his_o blood_n which_o he_o have_v begin_v neither_o do_v the_o bohemians_n right_o proceed_v when_o they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v by_o this_o testimony_n that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n ought_v to_o be_v give_v to_o all_o alike_o as_o touch_v infant_n the_o institution_n of_o christ_n do_v seclud_v they_o from_o the_o supper_n because_o they_o can_v as_o yet_o prove_v &_o examine_v themselves_o supper_n infant_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n neither_o yet_o celebrate_v the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n death_n the_o which_o thing_n the_o apostle_n paul_n teach_v to_o be_v necessary_a for_o all_o those_o which_o come_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o supper_n the_o same_o institution_n make_v the_o cup_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bread_n common_a to_o all_o man_n for_o it_o command_v that_o we_o drink_v all_o of_o the_o same_o 27._o math._n 26_o 27._o r._n therefore_o to_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o to_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n suffer_v for_o our_o sin_n a._n for_o he_o have_v god_n make_v a_o reconciler_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n to_o declare_v his_o justice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n paste_v 10.4_o rom._n 10.4_o you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o m._n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o all_o they_o be_v dead_a which_o eat_v not_o this_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n a._n for_o as_o we_o be_v all_o dead_a through_o sin_n so_o through_o faith_n in_o christ_n we_o be_v make_v alyve_a as_o the_o scripture_n teach_v 54._o who_o so_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n have_v eternal_a life_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n who_o so_o eat_v my_o flesh_n m._n he_o still_o boulde_o repeat_v that_o which_o go_v before_o as_o common_o they_o do_v which_o speak_v the_o truth_n c._n and_o he_o confirm_v that_o which_o be_v hard_o to_o be_v béeleve_v as_o that_o man_n soul_n be_v no_o otherwise_o feed_v with_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n than_o the_o body_n be_v sustain_v with_o meat_n and_o drink_v m._n for_o he_o speak_v more_o manifestlye_o than_o he_o do_v before_o when_o he_o expresselye_o name_v himself_o very_o to_o eat_v the_o lord_n be_v to_o abide_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o lord_n to_o abide_v in_o us._n b._n after_o this_o manner_n also_o we_o do_v common_o in_o these_o word_n to_o eat_v to_o drink_v understande_v not_o only_o the_o take_n of_o meat_n but_o also_o the_o nutriment_n and_o sustentation_n of_o life_n which_o procee_v of_o the_o same_o supper_n these_o word_n pertain_v not_o to_o the_o lord_n supper_n furthermore_o by_o these_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n it_o do_v plain_o appear_v that_o all_o this_o place_n be_v unaptlye_o and_o falselye_o expound_v concern_v the_o supper_n for_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n 11.30_o 1._o cor._n 11.30_o than_o all_o the_o that_o unworthy_o presume_v to_o the_o same_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v therewithal_o life_n but_o we_o know_v that_o many_o eat_v the_o same_o to_o their_o own_o destruction_n and_o damnation_n and_o verilye_o it_o be_v very_o fond_a and_o untimelye_o then_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o supper_n when_o as_o yet_o he_o have_v not_o institute_v the_o same_o therefore_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o he_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o continual_a eat_n by_o faith_n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o thereis_n nothing_o speak_v here_o which_o be_v not_o figure_v in_o the_o supper_n and_o truelye_o give_v to_o the_o faithful_a and_o therefore_o christ_n make_v his_o holy_a supper_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o seal_n to_o this_o sermon_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o our_o evangelist_n john_n make_v mention_n of_o this_o supper_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n m._n he_o promise_v everlasting_a life_n before_o the_o resurrection_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v endue_v with_o everlasting_a life_n by_o christ_n while_o they_o be_v in_o this_o life_n even_o as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o another_o place_n c._n and_o christ_n so_o often_o join_v the_o resurrection_n to_o everlasting_a life_n because_o our_o salvation_n be_v hide_v even_o until_o that_o day_n therefore_o what_o christ_n will_v give_v unto_o we_o no_o man_n can_v feel_v but_o he_o which_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n set_v before_o his_o eye_n the_o last_o resurrection_n 55._o for_o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n in_o deed_n and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v in_o deed_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o he_o which_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n have_v everlasting_a life_n because_o say_v he_o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n in_o deed_n and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v in_o deed_n c._n as_o the_o body_n with_o hongar_n do_v languish_v and_o pine_v away_o even_o so_o the_o soul_n do_v by_o and_o by_o perish_v if_o so_o be_v the_o same_o be_v not_o feed_v
which_o heavenly_a food_n for_o when_o he_o affirm_v that_o his_o flesh_n be_v meat_n in_o deed_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o those_o soul_n be_v like_a to_o famish_v which_o want_v this_o meat_n therefore_o thou_o shall_v then_o find_v life_n in_o christ_n if_o so_o be_v thou_o seek_v the_o matter_n and_o substance_n of_o life_n in_o his_o flesh_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o we_o forsake_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o death_n there_o be_v nothing_o before_o our_o eye_n but_o death_n neither_o do_v he_o bring_v we_o any_o other_o way_n to_o feel_v of_o his_o divine_a power_n than_o by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n m._n therefore_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n which_o shall_v be_v by_o his_o death_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n he_o intend_v to_o offer_v his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n a_o sacrifice_n to_o his_o father_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n question_n but_o why_o do_v he_o several_o make_v mention_v of_o his_o blood_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o flesh_n answer_v answer_v i_o answer_v christ_n in_o this_o have_v respect_n and_o regard_v te_fw-mi our_o rudeness_n for_o when_o distinct_o he_o express_v meat_n and_o drink_v by_o themselves_o he_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n that_o the_o life_n which_o he_o geve_v be_v perfect_a and_o complete_a in_o each_o point_n lest_o we_o shall_v fain_v and_o imagine_v to_o ourselves_o some_o half_a and_o unperfect_a life_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o we_o shall_v want_v no_o part_n of_o life_n if_o so_o be_v we_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n euenso_fw-la in_o the_o supper_n which_o agree_v with_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o content_v with_o the_o sign_n of_o bread_n he_o join_v thereunto_o the_o cup_n that_o have_v therein_o a_o doule_a pledge_n of_o life_n we_o may_v be_v content_v with_o he_o alone_a for_o he_o shall_v find_v no_o part_n of_o life_n in_o christ_n which_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o christ_n alone_o be_v his_o life_n 56._o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n m._n these_o word_n pertain_v to_o the_o similitude_n of_o such_o as_o eat_v and_o drink_v to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v more_o ample_o declare_v the_o premise_n meat_n and_o drink_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o eater_n and_o drinker_n of_o the_o same_o evenso_fw-la they_o abide_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o they_o have_v life_n otherwise_o meat_n without_o the_o eater_n or_o not_o abide_v in_o he_o that_o have_v eat_v the_o same_o do_v not_o nourish_v insomuche_o that_o life_n can_v consist_v if_o so_o be_v the_o eater_n and_o the_o meat_n be_v separate_v a_o sunder_o these_o thing_n be_v temporal_a and_o incorruptible_a and_o therefore_o imperfect_a to_o set_v forth_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o do_v after_o a_o sort_n set_v forth_o a_o sertayne_v image_n of_o he_o and_o do_v teach_v we_o this_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_o require_v that_o he_o which_o will_v have_v eternal_a life_n must_v have_v christ_n the_o true_a food_n of_o life_n abide_v in_o he_o in_o such_o wise_n that_o he_o may_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v separate_v and_o whosoever_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n have_v christ_n abide_v in_o he_o and_o he_o also_o in_o he_o c._o see_v therefore_o christ_n alone_a contain_v life_n in_o himself_o he_o prescribe_v unto_o we_o here_o a_o way_n how_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o same_o namely_o if_o so_o be_v we_o eat_v his_o flesh_n even_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v deny_v himself_o to_o be_v we_o otherways_o then_o by_o eat_v he_o through_o faith_n for_o he_o shall_v never_o come_v to_o the_o god_n christ_n which_o neglect_v man_n wherefore_o if_o thou_o will_v be_v partaker_n of_o any_o thing_n with_o christ_n thou_o must_v first_o of_o all_o take_v heed_n that_o thou_o do_v not_o despise_v or_o disdain_v his_o flesh_n bu_n therefore_o in_o these_o word_n the_o mystery_n of_o his_o incarnation_n and_o passion_n be_v more_o evident_o and_o full_o express_v so_o that_o he_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drynk_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o with_o a_o firm_a faith_n beleve_v that_o christ_n the_o true_a son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n be_v incarnate_a crucefy_v raise_v again_o for_o he_o that_o he_o wash_v we_o with_o his_o dloude_n from_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o have_v reconcile_v we_o to_o god_n his_o father_n whosoever_o believe_v this_o have_v life_n within_o he_o even_o the_o quicken_a spirit_n of_o christ_n the_o power_n of_o righteousness_n and_o redemtion_n and_o so_o christ_n lyve_v in_o he_o &_o he_o in_o christ_n dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o m._n because_o this_o meat_n and_o drink_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o corruption_n but_o have_v always_o in_o they_o power_n to_o geve_v life_n therefore_o he_o use_v the_o word_n quicken_a to_o this_o end_n that_o it_o may_v agree_v with_o that_o whereas_o he_o promise_v everlasting_a life_n to_o such_o as_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n c._n for_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a bond_n of_o unity_n and_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o do_v grow_v with_o we_o when_o our_o faith_n do_v rest_n and_o stay_v itself_o upon_o his_o death_n bu_n this_o place_n therefore_o of_o the_o gospel_n do_v agree_v with_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n where_o he_o say_v 3_o rom_n 3_o we_o know_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n furthermore_o hereby_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o external_a sign_n of_o bread_n of_o which_o many_o of_o the_o unbeléeving_n do_v eat_v who_o notwithstanding_o be_v far_o from_o christ_n also_o their_o error_n be_v hereby_o confute_v which_o think_v that_o judas_n do_v no_o less_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n then_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n see_v that_o christ_n give_v the_o bread_n to_o all_o for_o this_o be_v most_o sertayne_v that_o judas_n be_v never_o a_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o make_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n dead_a flesh_n and_o without_o spirit_n also_o they_o be_v very_o foolish_a which_o dream_n of_o any_o eat_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n without_o faith_n whenas_o only_a faith_n be_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o soul_n a._n therefore_o where_o faith_n want_v soul_n i'faith_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o soul_n there_o be_v no_o eat_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n 57_o and_o the_o lyvinge_a father_n have_v send_v i_o and_o i_o live_v by_o the_o father_n even_o so_o he_o that_o eat_v i_o shall_v live_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o i_o and_o the_o live_a father_n m._n this_o particle_n also_o serve_v for_o the_o declaration_n of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o bu_n and_o that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o manner_n of_o doubt_n in_o so_o great_a a_o mystery_n of_o our_o salvation_n he_o do_v yet_o more_o strong_o confirm_v that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v namely_o that_o his_o flesh_n be_v meat_n in_o deed_n and_o his_o blood_n drink_v in_o deed_n insomuche_o that_o such_o as_o be_v nourish_v therewith_o shall_v be_v without_o all_o peril_n of_o death_n c._n now_o therefore_o he_o pass_v to_o the_o principal_a cause_n because_o the_o principal_a original_n of_o life_n be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o he_o prevent_v a_o objection_n because_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o detract_v that_o from_o god_n which_o belong_v to_o god_n in_o make_v himself_o the_o cause_n of_o life_n so_o therefore_o he_o make_v himself_o the_o author_n of_o life_n that_o he_o confess_v that_o to_o be_v give_v he_o from_o another_o which_o he_o minister_v to_o other_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v r._n the_o father_n be_v life_n in_o deed_n so_o also_o be_o i_o the_o true_a life_n forsomuche_o as_o the_o father_n have_v whole_o imprint_v himself_o in_o i_o i_o will_v not_o reserve_v this_o life_n which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o i_o to_o myself_o alone_a as_o a_o spiteful_a and_o envious_a person_n but_o i_o will_v also_o communicate_v the_o same_o with_o the_o faithful_a that_o everye_o one_o which_o believe_v in_o i_o may_v have_v that_o life_n which_o i_o possess_v through_o the_o father_n for_o for_o this_o cause_n be_o i_o send_v into_o the_o world_n that_o everye_o one_o which_o beléeve_v in_o i_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o all_o those_o good_a thing_n and_o grace_n which_o through_o the_o father_n i_o possess_v by_o nature_n c._n let_v we_o note_n that_o he_o frame_v this_o occasion_n also_o to_o their_o capacity_n with_o who_o he_o
ascend_v what_o be_v it_o else_o but_o that_o he_o descend_v first_o into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n he_o which_o descend_v be_v even_o the_o same_o also_o which_o ascend_v above_o all_o heaven_n 4.9_o eph._n 4.9_o to_o fulfil_v all_o thing_n c._n in_o that_o he_o say_v he_o be_v first_o in_o heaven_n it_o do_v not_o proper_o agree_v to_o his_o humanity_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o this_o be_v no_o unwonted_a manner_n of_o speak_v when_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n do_v make_v one_o person_n and_o to_o attribute_v that_o to_o one_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o another_o 63._o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v the_o flesh_n profyte_v nothing_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o be_v spyrite_n and_o life_n it_o be_v the_o spyrite_n that_o quicken_v m._n this_o parcel_n contain_v a_o declaration_n of_o those_o thing_n at_o the_o which_o the_o disciple_n be_v offend_v because_o they_o seem_v hard_a c._n for_o christ_n teach_v that_o the_o jew_n receyve_v no_o profit_n by_o his_o doctrine_n because_o the_o same_o be_v spiritual_a they_o be_v but_o carnal_a hearer_n of_o the_o same_o but_o because_o this_o place_n have_v be_v diverse_o expound_v first_o of_o all_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o we_o have_v the_o true_a and_o proper_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n whereby_o we_o shall_v easy_o understand_v the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o he_o deny_v the_o flesh_n to_o profit_v any_o thing_n some_o do_v amiss_o refer_v the_o same_o to_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v carnal_a neither_o do_v they_o well_o which_o affirm_v that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n do_v profit_v we_o nothing_o in_o that_o it_o be_v eat_v but_o in_o that_o it_o be_v crucify_a but_o we_o must_v rather_o eat_v the_o same_o that_o it_o may_v profit_v we_o when_o it_o be_v crucify_a b._n othersome_a understande_v this_o of_o the_o spyrite_n which_o the_o apostle_n shall_v receyve_v after_o the_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o christ_n affyrm_v that_o they_o have_v then_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n when_o that_o most_o excellent_a teacher_n of_o the_o truth_n have_v replenish_v they_o with_o most_o ample_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n but_o their_o opinion_n seem_v far_o better_o which_o think_v that_o these_o word_n alone_o or_o of_o itself_o ought_v to_o be_v join_v therewith_o as_o if_o christ_n shall_v have_v say_v the_o flesh_n alone_a or_o of_o itself_o profit_v nothing_o the_o which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o matter_n itself_o c._n for_o christ_n have_v simp_o respect_n to_o the_o manner_n of_o eat_v he_o do_v not_o therefore_o so_o speak_v as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o profit_n at_o all_o to_o be_v receyve_v by_o his_o flesh_n not_o flesh_n with_o out_o the_o spirit_n profit_v not_o but_o only_o pronounce_v the_o same_o to_o be_v unprofitable_a if_o it_o be_v remove_v from_o the_o flesh_n for_o whereof_o come_v it_o that_o the_o flesh_n have_v quicken_a power_n but_o because_o it_o be_v spiritual_a therefore_o whosoever_o stay_v in_o the_o terrestrial_a nature_n of_o the_o flesh_n shall_v find_v nothing_o in_o the_o same_o but_o that_o which_o be_v dead_a but_o they_o which_o lift_v up_o their_o eye_n to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spyrite_n with_o the_o which_o the_o flesh_n be_v endue_v shall_v feel_v by_o by_o their_o affection_n and_o by_o the_o experience_n of_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v not_o call_v quicken_a in_o vain_a now_o let_v we_o see_v how_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v meat_n in_o deed_n and_o yet_o profit_v nothing_o surelye_o it_o be_v meat_n because_o we_o thereby_o have_v get_v life_n because_o in_o it_o god_n be_v please_v because_o in_o it_o we_o have_v all_o the_o part_n of_o salvation_n complete_a it_o profit_v nothing_o if_o so_o be_v we_o judge_v and_o esteem_v the_o same_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n and_o original_n thereof_o for_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n which_o of_o itself_o be_v subject_a to_o death_n do_v not_o give_v life_n but_o it_o do_v receyve_v of_o the_o spyrite_n to_o geve_v unto_o us._n wherefore_o it_o do_v become_v we_o also_o that_o we_o may_v be_v truelye_o feed_v by_o the_o same_o to_o bring_v with_o we_o the_o spiritual_a mouth_n of_o faith_n the_o word_n which_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o be_v spirit_n m._n he_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o external_a sound_n of_o these_o word_n but_o of_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o they_o and_o he_o declare_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o carnallye_o of_o the_o carnal_a eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n in_o the_o which_o there_o be_v no_o life_n but_o spyrituallye_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o quicken_a spyrite_n in_o the_o which_o there_o be_v life_n c._n in_o few_o word_n he_o teach_v that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v spiritual_a for_o this_o word_n spyrite_n be_v put_v for_o the_o adiective_n spiritual_a and_o that_o word_n be_v call_v spiritual_a which_o call_v we_o upwarde_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v our_o guide_n we_o may_v seek_v christ_n by_o faith_n and_o not_o in_o carnal_a sense_n in_o his_o heavenlye_a glory_n for_o we_o know_v that_o nothing_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v can_v be_v comprehend_v but_o by_o faith_n it_o be_v also_o worthy_a to_o be_v note_v that_o he_o join_v the_o spirit_n with_o life_n he_o call_v his_o word_n life_n of_o the_o effect_n but_o he_o teach_v that_o the_o same_o shall_v geve_v life_n to_o none_o but_o to_o he_o who_o spyritual_o receyve_v the_o same_o for_o whosoever_o receyve_v the_o same_o otherwise_o rather_o draw_v to_o himself_o death_n than_o life_n to_o the_o godly_a this_o be_v a_o most_o sweet_a title_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o be_v certify_v that_o the_o same_o be_v ordain_v for_o they_o to_o salvation_n they_o be_v notwithstanding_o herewithal_o admonish_v to_o show_v themselves_o meet_a disciple_n for_o the_o word_n be_v receyve_v by_o faith_n profit_n but_o without_o faith_n profit_v nothing_o at_o all_o 64._o but_o there_o be_v some_o of_o you_o that_o believe_v not_o for_o jesus_n know_v from_o the_o beginning_n which_o they_o be_v that_o believe_v not_o and_o who_o shall_v betray_v he_o but_o there_o be_v some_o of_o you_o m._n the_o lord_n be_v wont_a to_o upbraid_v man_n with_o their_o unbeléefe_n because_o there_o can_v no_o great_a injury_n be_v do_v to_o god_n than_o for_o man_n to_o doubt_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o truth_n christ_n again_o blame_v these_o man_n because_o they_o be_v devoyde_a of_o the_o spyrite_n do_v wicked_o deprave_v and_o corrupt_v his_o doctrine_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n turn_v the_o same_o to_o their_o own_o destruction_n for_o they_o may_v have_v otherwise_o object_v and_o say_v thou_o brag_v that_o thy_o word_n be_v able_a to_o geve_v life_n but_o we_o see_v no_o such_o thing_n he_o say_v therefore_o that_o they_o be_v a_o let_v unto_o themselves_o for_o unbeléefe_n as_o it_o be_v always_o proud_a shall_v never_o reap_v any_o fruit_n in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n christ_n unbelief_n contemn_v christ_n because_o it_o do_v contemptuouslye_o despise_v they_o he_o say_v not_o there_o be_v some_o of_o you_o which_o understande_v not_o but_o he_o show_v the_o cause_n wherefore_o they_o understand_v not_o there_o be_v say_v he_o some_o of_o you_o which_o believe_v not_o and_o therefore_o they_o understande_v not_o because_o they_o believe_v not_o by_o faith_n we_o be_v couple_v together_o and_o by_o understanding_n we_o be_v quicken_v first_o let_v we_o stick_v fast_o through_o faith_n that_o there_o may_v be_v somewhat_o to_o geve_v life_n by_o understanding_n for_o he_o which_o styck_v not_o fast_o resist_v and_o he_o which_o resist_v do_v not_o believe_v for_o how_o shall_v he_o be_v quicken_v which_o beléeve_v not_o c._n whereas_o he_o say_v only_o some_o of_o they_o be_v unbelieved_a when_o as_o almost_o every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v his_o fault_n he_o seem_v so_o to_o say_v to_o this_o end_n lest_o if_o there_o be_v any_o which_o as_o yet_o be_v curable_a they_o may_v thereby_o be_v bring_v to_o despair_v m._n he_o mean_v therefore_o by_o more_o gentle_a admonition_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o better_a mind_n and_o not_o so_o to_o cast_v they_o of_o that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o may_v be_v make_v careful_a to_o obtain_v the_o gift_n of_o faith_n for_o jesus_n know_v from_o the_o beginning_n bu_n this_o the_o evangelist_n put_v down_o to_o amplifye_v the_o authority_n and_o magistye_n of_o christ_n c._n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o christ_n do_v rashlye_a judge_n of_o his_o auditor_n many_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o his_o flock_n but_o their_o sudden_a fall_v away_o bewray_v their_o hypocrisy_n but_o the_o evangelist_n say_v that_o their_o unbeléefe_n which_o be_v
to_o all_o man_n m._n at_o other_o time_n for_o the_o most_o part_n he_o be_v wont_a to_o sit_v and_o teach_v now_o because_o the_o end_n of_o the_o feast_n be_v come_v and_o because_o that_o solemn_a and_o catholic_a sermon_n of_o israel_n be_v to_o be_v dissolve_v he_o be_v more_o fervent_a and_o do_v with_o a_o strong_a and_o serious_a cry_n commend_v to_o the_o people_n which_o be_v ready_a to_o depart_v that_o which_o they_o shall_v carry_v home_o with_o they_o more_o deep_o to_o consider_v and_o to_o ruminate_v bu_n for_o his_o cry_v now_o be_v not_o only_o a_o plain_n and_o sensible_a speech_n but_o also_o a_o loud_a voice_n thereby_o declare_v that_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o great_a that_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o geve_v ear_n to_o the_o same_o c_o this_o also_o be_v very_o profitable_a for_o we_o that_o the_o evangelist_n bring_v in_o christ_n cry_v here_o with_o full_a mouth_n that_o all_o which_o thirst_n shall_v come_v unto_o he_o for_o hereby_o we_o gather_v that_o not_o one_o or_o two_o be_v call_v with_o some_o soft_a voice_n secret_o but_o that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v so_o open_o proclaim_v to_o all_o man_n that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o same_o but_o he_o which_o willing_o stop_v his_o ear_n and_o will_v not_o hear_v so_o loud_a and_o shrill_a a_o cry_n if_o any_o man_n thirst_n m._n christ_n comprehend_v the_o whole_a sum_n of_o our_o salvation_n in_o a_o parabolicall_a kind_n of_o speech_n for_o christ_n speak_v not_o of_o bodily_a thirst_n which_o be_v quench_v with_o water_n but_o of_o the_o thirst_n of_o soul_n and_o of_o heavenlye_a grace_n for_o the_o thirst_n of_o soul_n be_v that_o gredye_a desire_n of_o heavenly_a grace_n soul_n thirst_v which_o belong_v to_o soul_n by_o which_o conscience_n burden_a with_o sin_n be_v afflict_v and_o trouble_v c._n therefore_o he_o exhort_v all_o to_o the_o participation_n of_o his_o goodness_n so_o that_o they_o know_v and_o feel_v their_o own_o need_n desyer_n to_o be_v holpen_v for_o we_o be_v all_o needy_a bare_a and_o void_a of_o goodness_n but_o the_o feel_v of_o that_o need_n do_v not_o move_v all_o man_n to_o seek_v for_o remedy_n hereupon_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o many_o not_o once_o move_v their_o foot_n do_v miserable_o perish_v nay_o many_o feel_v not_o their_o need_n until_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n with_o his_o heat_n do_v cause_n a_o hongar_n and_o thirst_n to_o arise_v in_o their_o heart_n therefore_o the_o office_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o make_v we_o to_o desire_n his_o grace_n he_o rather_o call_v those_o that_o thirst_n than_o the_o hongary_n bu_n for_o we_o can_v worse_o abide_v thirst_n than_o hongar_n because_o the_o heat_n which_o be_v within_o we_o whereby_o the_o thirst_n be_v kindle_v do_v more_o vex_v and_o bite_v we_o than_o dryness_n whereby_o hongar_n die_v and_o be_v more_o weaken_a very_o well_o and_o cunning_o therefore_o be_v the_o affliction_n of_o a_o trouble_a conscience_n oppress_v with_o sin_n thus_o describe_v morover_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o do_v so_o much_o recreate_v and_o refresh_v a_o man_n pine_v and_o wither_v away_o with_o thirst_n as_o do_v clear_a water_n draw_v out_o of_o a_o lively_a spring_n evenso_fw-la that_o joy_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o the_o faithful_a man_n receive_v by_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o gospel_n can_v be_v sufficient_o express_v in_o word_n c._n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n also_o but_o that_o he_o allude_v to_o the_o place_n of_o the_o prophet_n all_o you_o that_o thirst_v come_v unto_o the_o water_n etc._n etc._n 55.1_o esay_n 55.1_o for_o that_o which_o the_o prophet_n there_o attribute_v to_o god_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v fulfil_v in_o christ_n even_o as_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n song_n that_o the_o scotfree_a and_o full_a he_o send_v empty_a away_o therefore_o he_o call_v all_o man_n direct_o unto_o he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o alone_a be_v sufficient_a to_o quench_v the_o thirst_n of_o all_o man_n and_o that_o they_o be_v deceyve_v which_o seek_v for_o the_o jest_n drop_v from_o any_o other_o to_o quench_v their_o thirst_n m._n for_o he_o say_v not_o if_o any_o man_n thirst_n let_v he_o apostle_n but_o let_v he_o come_v to_o i_o and_o he_o say_v not_o if_o any_o man_n thirst_n let_v he_o go_v to_o my_o father_n from_o who_o notwithstanding_o we_o have_v everye_o good_a thing_n come_v down_o from_o the_o father_n of_o light_v 17._o jam._n i._n 17._o because_o christ_n speak_v here_o as_o the_o only_a mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n who_o the_o father_n have_v send_v into_o this_o world_n that_o we_o may_v all_o receyve_v of_o his_o fullness_n grace_n for_o grace_n to_o who_o we_o have_v testimony_n from_o heaven_n say_v this_o be_v my_o well_o belove_a son_n 17.5_o mat._n 17.5_o in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v hear_v he_o he_o which_o come_v unto_o he_o come_v unto_o god_n himself_o a._n for_o he_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o the_o father_n even_o as_o he_o himself_o testify_v say_v no_o man_n come_v to_o the_o father_n 14.6_o joh._n 14.6_o but_o by_o i_o c._n let_v no_o man_n therefore_o complain_v as_o uncertain_a what_o he_o shall_v do_v to_o obtain_v salvation_n christ_n the_o well_o of_o life_n call_v here_o all_o man_n to_o he_o say_v if_o any_o man_n thirst_n let_v he_o come_v to_o i_o and_o he_o shall_v drink_v to_o the_o which_o exhortation_n he_o add_v this_o promise_n and_o drink_v by_o these_o word_n christ_n declare_v that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o dry_a spring_n but_o a_o deep_a and_o bottomless_a well_o which_o geve_v drink_v plentiful_o to_o all_o man_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o our_o desire_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a if_o so_o be_v we_o seek_v for_o that_o of_o he_o which_o be_v want_v in_o us._n m._n see_v therefore_o we_o have_v christ_n the_o true_a well_o of_o life_n let_v we_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o do_v not_o frame_v to_o ourselves_o void_a sesterne_n which_o will_v hold_v no_o water_n to_o quench_v our_o thirst_n even_o as_o the_o lord_n cast_v the_o people_n in_o the_o tooth_n by_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n i3_n jer._n 2._o i3_n and_o the_o apostle_n say_v if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a and_o he_o be_v the_o propiciation_n for_o our_o sin_n i._n i_o joh._n 2._o i._n and_o not_o only_o for_o our_o sin_n but_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n 38._o he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o as_o say_v the_o scripture_n out_o of_o his_o belly_n shall_v flow_v river_n of_o water_n of_o life_n m._n now_o christ_n show_v how_o those_o that_o be_v a_o thyrste_n shall_v drink_v of_o the_o well_o of_o water_n of_o life_n teach_v that_o to_o come_v and_o to_o drink_v be_v to_o believe_v even_o as_o he_o say_v in_o another_o place_n he_z which_o come_v unto_o i_o shall_v not_o hunger_n 6.35_o joh._n 6.35_o and_o he_o which_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v never_o thirst_n also_o it_o be_v say_v i_o will_v pour_v water_n upon_o the_o thyrstye_n and_o floodde_n upon_o the_o dry_a ground_n 44.3_o esai_n 44.3_o i_o will_v pour_v my_o spyrite_n upon_o thy_o seed_n and_o my_o blessing_n upon_o thy_o bud_n c._n therefore_o we_o must_v come_v in_o faith_n and_o not_o with_o our_o foot_n for_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v to_o embrace_v he_o so_o as_o the_o gospel_n set_v he_o forth_o unto_o we_o full_a of_o wisdom_n virtue_n righteousness_n purity_n life_n and_o all_o other_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o say_v the_o scripture_n bu_n there_o be_v some_o contention_n among_o the_o interpreter_n whereunto_o this_o parcel_n as_o ought_v to_o be_v refer_v some_o restrain_v it_o to_o the_o former_a member_n namely_o to_o the_o word_n believe_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v the_o scripture_n teach_v to_o believe_v in_o i_o for_o it_o testify_v of_o i_o therefore_o he_o that_o beléeve_v in_o i_o as_o the_o scripture_n teach_v out_o of_o his_o belly_n shall_v flow_v river_n of_o water_n of_o life_n but_o it_o be_v extend_v to_o the_o whole_a sentence_n furthermore_o christ_n do_v not_o here_o name_v any_o certain_a place_n of_o scripture_n but_o take_v his_o testimony_n out_o of_o the_o come_v doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n for_o so_o often_o as_o the_o lord_n promise_v the_o abundance_n of_o the_o spirit_n do_v compare_v the_o same_o to_o lyve_a water_n christ_n water_n of_o life_n be_v christ_n he_o have_v special_a respect_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o thither_o direct_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o faithful_a therefore_o what_o prophecy_n soever_o there_o be_v extant_a concern_v lyve_a water_n they_o be_v fulfil_v in_o christ_n because_o he_o alone_a
he_o will_v not_o abrogate_v the_o office_n of_o the_o lawful_a judge_n c._n therefore_o they_o which_o gather_v hereby_o that_o adultery_n be_v not_o to_o be_v punish_v by_o death_n by_o the_o same_o reason_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o grant_v that_o a_o inheritance_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v divide_v because_o christ_n will_v not_o make_v himself_o a_o arbiter_n or_o umpire_n in_o that_o business_n between_o to_o brethren_n yea_o let_v everye_o wickedness_n be_v exempt_v from_o the_o punishemente_n of_o the_o law_n 12.13_o luk._n 12.13_o if_o so_o be_v adulterer_n may_v escape_v unpunished_a then_o open_a the_o gate_n to_o treason_n to_o murder_v to_o rapine_n and_o theft_n do_v not_o the_o adulteress_n in_o bring_v forth_o a_o bastard_n do_v she_o not_o i_o say_v boath_n rob_v the_o name_n of_o the_o stock_n and_o family_n and_o also_o transfer_v and_o carry_v the_o heir_n right_a which_o come_v by_o lawful_a inheritance_n unto_o other_o which_o be_v stranger_n this_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o evell_a when_o the_o wife_n which_o be_v give_v to_o her_o husband_n to_o his_o great_a reproach_n geve_v herself_o to_o be_v defile_v whereby_o she_o break_v the_o holy_a covenant_n of_o god_n without_o the_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o holiness_n in_o this_o world_n m._n therefore_o this_o say_n of_o christ_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o defence_n of_o adultery_n as_o though_o the_o same_o aught_o to_o be_v unpunished_a among_o christian_n bu_n as_o though_o the_o lord_n jesus_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o defence_n of_o adulterer_n and_o mind_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o defend_v and_o maintain_v adultery_n but_o this_o be_v popish_a divinity_n name_o that_o christ_n in_o this_o place_n bring_v the_o law_n of_o grace_n by_o which_o impunitye_n be_v gevento_fw-it adulterer_n and_o go_v about_o by_o all_o mean_v possible_a to_o pull_v out_o of_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n the_o grace_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n commend_v unto_o we_o everye_o where_o they_o only_o in_o this_o place_n preach_v forth_o in_o some_o tune_n the_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o why_o do_v they_o this_o but_o only_o because_o they_o may_v defile_v other_o man_n wyve_n and_o escape_v unpunished_a and_o all_o this_o come_v of_o their_o devillishe_a singleness_n and_o vow_a chastity_n who_o think_v it_o not_o expedient_a to_o have_v a_o lawful_a wife_n but_o let_v we_o note_n that_o christ_n so_o remit_v man_n sin_n that_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o do_v not_o subverte_v and_o overthrow_v politic_a order_n judgemente_n and_o punishment_n appoint_v by_o law_n bu_n for_o the_o office_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o of_o the_o preacher_n be_v discrepaunt_v r._n not_o that_o the_o office_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o sword_n be_v contrary_a within_o themselves_o but_o because_o the_o one_o be_v civil_a respect_v outward_a peace_n the_o other_o divine_a administer_a true_a peace_n of_o conscience_n bu_n if_o therefore_o the_o magistrate_n have_v lawfullye_o condemn_v adultery_n christ_n will_v not_o have_v absolve_v the_o same_o he_o absolve_v she_o from_o sin_n if_o she_o repent_v but_o he_o take_v not_o away_o the_o punishment_n and_o public_a example_n even_o as_o also_o he_o receyve_v the_o penitent_a and_o faithful_a thief_n into_o the_o favour_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n 23._o luke_n 23._o but_o yet_o do_v not_o delyver_v he_o from_o the_o punishment_n which_o he_o have_v deserve_v for_o theft_n go_v and_o sin_n no_o more_o m._n our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v not_o here_o upbrayde_v the_o sinful_a woman_n neither_o do_v he_o exaggerate_v the_o fylthinesse_n of_o her_o fault_n but_o quiet_o send_v she_o away_o from_o he_o with_o few_o and_o gentle_a word_n for_o her_o mind_n be_v vex_v and_o trouble_v of_o such_o there_o must_v always_o a_o consideration_n be_v have_v least_o by_o hypocritical_a severitye_n we_o bring_v heavye_a and_o trouble_a mind_n in_o to_o the_o pit_n of_o desperation_n but_o thou_o must_v deal_v otherwise_o if_o thou_o have_v to_o do_v with_o a_o styfnecked_a and_o ostinate_a sinner_n bu_n notwithstanding_o lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o the_o same_o free_a remission_n of_o sin_n be_v a_o geve_v of_o liberty_n to_o sin_n he_o by_o and_o by_o add_v a_o restraint_n from_o sin_n c._n hereby_o we_o gather_v what_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n name_o that_o the_o sinner_n repentance_n god_n grace_n lead_v we_o to_o repentance_n be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n may_v worship_v and_o serve_v the_o author_n of_o his_o salvation_n in_o innocensie_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n r._n for_o the_o gospel_n remit_v sin_n not_o because_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o sin_n but_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v repent_v and_o walk_v in_o newenesse_n of_o life_n c._n 6._o romm_n 6._o for_o by_o the_o same_o word_n of_o god_n when_o pardon_n be_v offer_v unto_o we_o we_o be_v call_v to_o repentance_n bu_n they_o therefore_o which_o be_v receyve_v into_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o who_o sin_n be_v forgeven_v they_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o they_o take_v not_o unto_o themselves_o liberty_n and_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o enemy_n let_v they_o see_v that_o they_o serve_v god_n their_o delyverer_n in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n before_o he_o all_o the_o day_n of_o their_o life_n m._n and_o in_o that_o that_o christ_n say_v not_o gooe_v thy_o way_n and_o commit_v no_o more_o adultery_n but_o go_v thy_o way_n and_o sin_n no_o more_o we_o be_v teach_v how_o necessary_a innocency_n righteousness_n and_o holiness_n be_v to_o those_o that_o repent_v in_o so_o much_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o only_o abstain_v from_o sin_n but_o also_o from_o all_o show_n of_o evell_a c._n finallye_o although_o this_o exhortation_n have_v respect_n to_o the_o time_n follow_v 5.22_o 1._o the._n 5.22_o yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o humble_v sinner_n by_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o life_n already_o past_a 12._o then_o speak_v jesus_n again_o unto_o they_o say_v i_o be_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n he_o that_o follow_v i_o do_v not_o walk_v in_o darkness_n but_o shall_v have_v the_o light_n of_o life_n b._n because_o all_o godliness_n and_o salvation_n depend_v upon_o this_o that_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o lord_n to_o be_v one_o christ_n and_o only_a saviour_n he_o always_o in_o all_o his_o doctrine_n exhort_v man_n unto_o the_o same_o that_o he_o may_v provoke_v his_o hearer_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o may_v persuade_v they_o that_o at_o his_o hand_n life_n and_o all_o thing_n else_o be_v to_o be_v seek_v for_o hereupon_o he_o call_v himself_o the_o bread_n which_o geve_v life_n unto_o the_o world_n 6.51_o john_n 6.51_o for_o he_o use_v allegory_n and_o parrable_n for_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n that_o they_o may_v the_o better_o remember_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v hereupon_o also_o in_o the_o chapter_n go_v before_o he_o call_v all_o those_o unto_o he_o which_o thirst_v and_o promise_v that_o all_o they_o which_o will_v come_v unto_o he_o shall_v never_o thirst_v by_o all_o these_o thing_n he_o teach_v that_o everlasting_a life_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o work_v in_o all_o man_n teach_v all_o thing_n sanctify_v and_o profit_v all_o thing_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o he_o which_o receyve_v christ_n with_o a_o sure_a and_o undoubted_a faith_n now_o he_o call_v himself_o light_v the_o which_o whosoever_o follow_v he_o can_v not_o err_v this_o holy_a ghost_n be_v that_o light_n of_o life_n lyght_a all_o man_n to_o that_o which_o be_v profitable_a for_o they_o jest_n any_o man_n shall_v stumble_v in_o this_o world_n or_o lest_o he_o shall_v go_v astraye_n in_o the_o darkness_n of_o fleshelye_o desire_v and_o of_o carnal_a judgement_n c._n and_o this_o be_v a_o glorious_a title_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v call_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n world_n christ_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n for_o see_v we_o be_v all_o blind_a by_o nature_n there_o be_v set_v before_o we_o a_o reméedye_n by_o which_o we_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o darkness_n may_v attain_v to_o the_o true_a light_n and_o this_o benefit_n be_v not_o offer_v to_o one_o or_o two_o alone_a for_o christ_n preach_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o difference_n between_o jew_n or_o gentile_n between_o circumcise_a and_o uncircumcised_a between_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a or_o between_o bond_n and_o free_a m._n furthermore_o if_o christ_n only_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n than_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v in_o darkness_n subject_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n insomuch_o that_o neither_o man_n reason_n nor_o strength_n have_v any_o light_n
m._n those_o thing_n in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o concern_v the_o jew_n they_o still_o dissemble_v as_o that_o they_o shall_v dye_v in_o their_o sin_n but_o those_o thing_n which_o appertain_v to_o christ_n himself_o or_o to_o his_o father_n they_o malliciouslye_o prosecute_v r._n for_o he_o say_v before_o if_o you_o believe_v not_o that_o i_o be_o therefore_o importunatelye_a they_o inquire_v who_o he_o be_v when_o as_o before_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n and_o have_v hitherto_o teach_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n m._n in_o so_o much_o that_o they_o say_v thou_o testifye_v of_o thyself_o but_o thy_o testimony_n be_v not_o true_a they_o have_v hear_v therefore_o enough_o who_o he_o have_v say_v himself_o to_o be_v if_o so_o be_v they_o will_v have_v beléeve_v his_o word_n so_o that_o they_o do_v not_o ask_v with_o this_o mind_n and_o purpose_n to_o know_v who_o he_o be_v but_o to_o entrap_v and_o snare_v he_o again_o bu_n for_o they_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v many_o thing_n whereby_o they_o may_v have_v know_v who_o he_o be_v if_o so_o be_v their_o unbelief_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n which_o be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o evell_a have_v not_o let_v they_o maliciouslye_o therefore_o and_o of_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n they_o ask_v he_o who_o be_v thou_o m._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v thou_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v dye_v in_o our_o sin_n except_o we_o believe_v that_o thou_o arthe_n who_o make_v thou_o thyself_o who_o shall_v we_o think_v thou_o to_o be_v as_o though_o we_o be_v ignorant_a who_o thou_o be_v thus_o be_v we_o wont_a to_o speak_v contemptouslye_o to_o those_o who_o we_o think_v do_v too_o much_o exalt_v themselves_o above_o their_o state_n and_o who_o forget_v their_o own_o imbecility_n and_o weakness_n wax_v too_o proud_a that_o we_o may_v say_v who_o be_v thou_o a._n all_o the_o godly_a ought_v so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o this_o world_n to_o prepare_v themselves_o against_o such_o question_n as_o these_o be_v which_o declare_v nothing_o but_o contempt_n after_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n arm_v themselves_o with_o patience_n and_o not_o to_o be_v unmindful_a of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o he_o say_v the_o world_n know_v not_o you_o because_o it_o know_v not_o he_o for_o if_o christ_n be_v unknown_a unto_o the_o world_n what_o marvel_n be_v it_o if_o so_o be_v his_o disciple_n who_o he_o have_v choose_v out_o of_o the_o world_n be_v neither_o know_v nor_o belove_v of_o the_o same_o from_o the_o beginning_n m._n m._n this_o answer_n of_o christ_n to_o many_o man_n seem_v obscure_a and_o be_v diverslye_o expound_v of_o interpreter_n some_o understand_v it_o so_o as_o if_o christ_n have_v call_v himself_o the_o beginning_n bu_n but_o it_o be_v put_v adverbiallye_o and_o be_v in_o steed_n of_o this_o which_o we_o say_v at_o the_o first_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v i_o do_v not_o sodainlye_o arise_v but_o be_o come_v forth_o in_o the_o midst_n even_o as_o i_o be_v promise_v long_o before_o and_o whatsoever_o i_o now_o speak_v it_o be_v agree_v with_o that_o which_o have_v be_v speak_v in_o all_o age_n to_o be_v short_a this_o answer_n consist_v of_o two_o part_n for_o by_o this_o word_n beginning_n he_o comprehend_v all_o that_o time_n since_o the_o which_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v give_v to_o the_o father_n in_o say_v also_o that_o he_o speak_v from_o the_o begnning_a he_o join_v his_o present_a doctrine_n with_o the_o ancient_a prophecy_n and_o teach_v that_o it_o depend_v upon_o they_o whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o jew_n have_v no_o other_o cause_n of_o their_o ignorance_n than_o this_o that_o they_o beléeve_v not_o neither_o the_o prophet_n nor_o the_o gospel_n for_o everye_o where_o christ_n only_o be_v set_v before_o their_o eye_n they_o feign_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o the_o phrophete_n and_o to_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o eternal_a covenant_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o they_o reject_v christ_n which_o be_v promise_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o offer_v himself_o before_o they_o 26._o i_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o say_v and_o to_o judge_v of_o you_o yea_o and_o he_o that_o send_v i_o be_v true_a and_o i_o speak_v to_o the_o world_n those_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o he_o r._n now_o he_o use_v a_o commination_n or_o threaten_v against_o the_o contemner_n and_o derider_n of_o his_o word_n c._n because_o that_o he_o see_v that_o he_o lose_v his_o labour_n he_o prosecute_v the_o matter_n no_o further_o but_o only_o pronounce_v that_o god_n will_v be_v a_o revenger_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o contemn_v because_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o same_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o so_o be_v i_o will_v accuse_v you_o your_o malice_n and_o wickedness_n geve_v i_o occasion_n enough_o bu_n i_o may_v cast_v in_o your_o tooth_n many_o heinous_a offence_n but_o because_o i_o know_v that_o you_o will_v be_v thereby_o the_o worse_a c._n i_o will_v now_o omit_v they_o but_o my_o father_n which_o have_v give_v i_o authority_n to_o teach_v will_v do_v his_o office_n and_o will_v defend_v his_o word_n from_o the_o wicked_a contempt_n of_o man_n bu_n for_o god_n be_v the_o everlasting_a and_o infallible_a truth_n c._n to_o the_o same_o end_n almost_o partain_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n which_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n do_v where_o he_o say_v 2.13_o 2._o tim._n 2.13_o if_o we_o be_v unfaithful_a he_o abide_v faithful_a he_o can_v deny_v himself_o in_o fine_o he_o threaten_v the_o unbeléeving_a with_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n which_o discreedite_n his_o word_n because_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o defend_v his_o truth_n and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a stabillitye_n of_o our_o faith_n when_o we_o make_v god_n alone_a sufficient_a to_o establish_v the_o authority_n of_o his_o doctrine_n although_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v reject_v the_o same_o whosoever_o they_o be_v that_o presume_v of_o this_o defence_n shall_v faithful_o serve_v christ_n they_o may_v bold_o convince_v the_o whole_a world_n of_o a_o lie_n and_o i_o speak_v to_o the_o world_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v those_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o god_n with_o who_o i_o be_v before_o i_o come_v into_o the_o world_n i_o speak_v now_o in_o the_o world_n that_o now_o the_o contempt_n of_o my_o doctrine_n may_v redound_v to_o the_o ignominy_n of_o my_o father_n therefore_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o word_n and_o revelation_n of_o god_n utter_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o the_o world_n the_o which_o very_o be_v a_o great_a commendation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o the_o gospel_n the_o like_a whereof_o a_o man_n shall_v seldom_o find_v wherefore_o it_o deserve_v to_o be_v write_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o godly_a in_o golden_a letter_n c._n he_o say_v therefore_o that_o he_o bring_v forth_o nothing_o but_o that_o which_o he_o have_v receyve_v of_o the_o father_n who_o enjoin_v unto_o he_o his_o office_n moreover_o by_o his_o example_n he_o prescribe_v a_o common_a law_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o no_o man_n may_v be_v hear_v but_o he_o which_o speak_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n m._n for_o if_o christ_n have_v speak_v nothing_o in_o this_o world_n which_o he_o have_v not_o hear_v of_o god_n the_o father_n by_o who_o he_o be_v send_v what_o mortal_a man_n may_v teach_v any_o doctrine_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o come_v from_o god_n they_z therefore_o be_v sincere_a teacher_n in_o the_o church_n which_o can_v true_o say_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o lord_n who_o minister_n we_o be_v we_o speak_v in_o the_o world_n the_o rest_n be_v to_o be_v shun_v and_o avoid_v as_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n and_o seducer_n c._n wherefore_o as_o he_o noat_v the_o perverse_a arrogancy_n of_o man_n which_o intrude_v themselves_o without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o he_o instruct_v &_o arm_v with_o invincible_a constancy_n all_o godly_a teacher_n which_o be_v assure_v of_o their_o call_n that_o have_v god_n their_o captain_n and_o defender_n they_o may_v bold_o withstand_v all_o mortal_a man_n 27._o howbeit_o they_o understand_v not_o that_o he_o speak_v to_o they_o of_o his_o father_n m._n these_o word_n be_v put_v down_o by_o the_o evangelist_n in_o steed_n of_o a_o parenthisis_n to_o note_n the_o dull_a understanding_n of_o the_o hearer_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o jew_n be_v blind_a and_o deaf_a and_o therefore_o want_v their_o common_a sense_n understande_v not_o as_o yet_o that_o christ_n speak_v these_o thing_n of_o his_o
thing_n which_o please_v he_o or_o else_o that_o he_o say_v that_o for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o always_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o please_v his_o father_n it_o may_v certaynelye_o be_v gather_v that_o he_o be_v with_o he_o and_o that_o he_o leave_v he_o not_o alone_o both_o these_o construction_n be_v true_a for_o the_o father_n leave_v not_o those_o alone_a which_o do_v always_o those_o thing_n which_o please_v he_o and_o hereby_o we_o may_v have_v a_o assure_a judgement_n that_o god_n be_v with_o we_o if_o so_o be_v we_o continual_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o please_v he_o c._n wherefore_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o have_v experience_n of_o the_o same_o presence_n of_o god_n we_o must_v confourme_v ourselves_o whole_o unto_o his_o will_n and_o government_n for_o if_o so_o be_v our_o sense_n and_o reason_n have_v any_o rule_n at_o all_o because_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v want_v all_o our_o study_n and_o labour_n shall_v have_v evyll_n success_n and_o if_o so_o be_v we_o seem_v to_o have_v good_a success_n for_o a_o time_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o end_n at_o the_o leangth_n shall_v be_v stark_o naught_o m._n many_o boast_v of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o thereby_o go_v about_o to_o justify_v all_o kind_n of_o error_n because_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v in_o the_o church_n which_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o same_o to_o err_v but_o how_o much_o better_o be_v it_o hereby_o to_o prove_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n name_o by_o their_o godly_a and_o virtuous_a life_n in_o the_o church_n c._n furthermore_o when_o christ_n say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o leave_v alone_o he_o do_v after_o a_o sort_n complain_v of_o the_o unbeléefe_n of_o his_o country_n man_n among_o who_o he_o find_v almost_o noane_n which_o will_v be_v his_o disciple_n notwithstanding_o he_o show_v that_o he_o account_v this_o one_o thing_n sufficient_a for_o he_o that_o he_o have_v god_n his_o revenger_n so_o we_o at_o this_o day_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o good_a courage_n and_o not_o to_o faint_a because_o the_o faithful_a be_v few_o in_o number_n for_o although_o the_o whole_a world_n withstand_v our_o doctrine_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o be_v not_o alone_o hereby_o also_o appear_v how_o foolish_a the_o boast_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v who_o set_v god_n aside_o boast_v of_o their_o multitude_n multitude_n papist_n boast_v of_o multitude_n a._n as_o though_o the_o invinsible_a and_o everlasting_a truth_n of_o god_n ▪_o might_n be_v oppress_v by_o the_o contempt_n and_o multitude_n of_o man_n therefore_o it_o be_v much_o better_a to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n with_o his_o little_a slocke_n and_o to_o follow_v he_o than_o to_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o antichrist_n with_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n 30._o as_o he_o speak_v these_o word_n many_o believe_v on_o he_o bu_n christ_n hitherto_o teach_v most_o plainelye_o both_o that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v divine_a sure_a and_o infallible_a and_o also_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o light_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n send_v of_o the_o father_n to_o illuminate_v justify_v and_o save_v all_o they_o which_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o this_o plain_a and_o effectual_a doctrine_n of_o the_o lord_n want_v not_o her_o fruit_n in_o the_o church_n for_o although_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o whole_a flock_n of_o the_o pharisee_n withstand_v the_o lord_n yet_o notwithstanding_o many_o of_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n believe_v on_o he_o the_o which_o verylye_o be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v dispute_v of_o name_o that_o we_o also_o may_v believe_v in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o true_a son_n of_o the_o lyve_a god_n the_o messiah_n the_o life_n and_o light_v of_o the_o whole_a world_n c._n therefore_o when_o all_o hope_n be_v past_a there_o arise_v some_o fruit_n among_o so_o many_o let_v b._n for_o there_o be_v bee_n never_o want_v which_o suck_n honey_n out_o of_o the_o flower_n of_o god_n word_n howesoever_o the_o spider_n draw_v poison_v out_o of_o the_o same_o m._n let_v we_o learn_v therefore_o how_o that_o open_a contention_n with_o the_o adversary_n concern_v religion_n want_v not_o fruit_n if_o so_o be_v rail_v and_o taunt_a be_v shun_v and_o all_o thing_n dyrect_v and_o dispose_v to_o the_o set_v forth_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o this_o example_n of_o christ_n for_o although_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o obstinate_a adversary_n receyve_v no_o profit_n who_o seek_v not_o to_o know_v what_o be_v true_a and_o what_o false_a but_o only_o hunt_v after_o their_o own_o private_a honour_n and_o gain_n yet_o notwithstanding_o great_a profit_n may_v redoune_n to_o those_o which_o be_v sincere_a and_o indyfferent_a hearer_n of_o the_o controversye_n we_o have_v have_v experience_n of_o these_o thing_n in_o our_o time_n in_o many_o place_n whereupon_o our_o adversary_n when_o such_o disputation_n shall_v be_v concern_v religion_n cause_v they_o to_o be_v hold_v in_o secréete_n without_o any_o publyke_a auditory_a take_v diligent_a heed_n lest_o any_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n shall_v hear_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o same_o as_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v commend_v or_o allow_v which_o with_o impudent_a reproach_n and_o rail_v more_o lyke_a player_n than_o divine_n do_v not_o beutifye_v the_o cause_n of_o christ_n but_o defourme_v it_o do_v not_o manifest_v it_o but_o obscure_a it_o do_v not_o commend_v it_o but_o make_v the_o same_o more_o odious_a even_o so_o their_o malice_n be_v to_o be_v detest_v which_o either_o altogether_o deny_v serious_a sober_a godly_a and_o moderate_a inquisition_n and_o discuss_v publikelye_o to_o be_v have_v concern_v the_o controversy_n of_o our_o religion_n or_o else_o do_v so_o limmite_v and_o bind_v they_o that_o they_o serve_v nothing_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n jest_n by_o any_o mean_v the_o miserable_a church_n may_v be_v holpen_v c._n moreover_o the_o evangelist_n here_o improperlye_o speak_v of_o faith_n which_o be_v only_o a_o certain_a preparation_n to_o faith_n for_o he_o commend_v they_o no_o far_o than_o that_o they_o be_v prone_a and_o ready_a to_o receyve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n to_o which_o also_o appertain_v the_o next_o admonition_fw-la 31._o then_o say_v jesus_n to_o the_o jew_n which_o believe_v on_o he_o if_o you_o continewe_v in_o my_o word_n then_o be_v you_o my_o very_a disciple_n then_o say_v jesus_n bu_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n leave_v the_o wicked_a railer_n and_o gentle_o turn_v to_o those_o that_o beléeve_v teach_v they_o very_o notable_o what_o be_v needful_a and_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v m._n this_o example_n special_o pertain_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n that_o they_o also_o may_v seek_v with_o all_o their_o power_n diligent_o to_o teach_v and_o to_o confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n those_o who_o they_o know_v to_o be_v new_o come_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o this_o business_n the_o apostle_n diligent_o apply_v himself_o as_o a_o thing_n most_o necessary_a to_o be_v do_v call_v it_o wateringe_v take_v a_o similitude_n of_o young_a plant_n which_o be_v often_o tim_n set_v in_o the_o ground_n in_o vain_a if_o so_o be_v the_o diligence_n of_o water_a be_v not_o adjoin_v thereunto_o if_o you_o continue_v in_o my_o word_n b._n it_o be_v likely_a that_o there_o be_v ipocrite_n as_o most_o common_o it_o be_v see_v among_o those_o who_o the_o lord_n judge_v to_o he_o beléever_v therefore_o to_o note_n these_o and_o to_o confirm_v those_o which_o have_v truelye_o beléeve_v the_o lord_n say_v if_o you_o continue_v in_o my_o word_n then_o be_v you_o my_o very_a disciple_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v you_o have_v now_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o beleve_v if_o therefore_o you_o percevere_a in_o the_o faith_n of_o this_o word_n and_o suffer_v not_o yourselves_o to_o be_v remove_v from_o the_o faith_n either_o by_o the_o power_n of_o this_o world_n or_o by_o the_o offence_n of_o my_o cross_n i_o will_v acknowledge_v you_o for_o my_o true_a dicsiple_n for_o they_o be_v not_o true_a disciple_n which_o one_o while_n believe_v and_o within_o a_o little_a while_n after_o when_o some_o offence_n or_o persecution_n arise_v go_v away_o perseveraunce_n perseveraunce_n c._n here_o therefore_o first_o of_o all_o christ_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a if_o so_o be_v a_o man_n begin_v well_o except_o he_o proceed_v and_o persevere_v unto_o the_o end_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o exhort_v those_o which_o have_v taste_v of_o his_o doctrine_n to_o the_o perseveraunce_n of_o faith_n when_o he_o pronounse_v those_o to_o be_v his_o very_a disciple_n which_o take_v deep_a root_n in_o
his_o doctrine_n only_o and_o apostleship_n euenso_fw-la christ_n here_o defend_v rather_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o doctrine_n then_o of_o his_o person_n a._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o in_o all_o my_o office_n i_o show_v myself_o a_o faithful_a minister_n of_o god_n you_o have_v nothing_o to_o cloak_n your_o incredulytie_n with_o all_o and_o to_o excuse_v the_o same_o for_o i_o teach_v true_o i_o show_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n unto_o you_o no_o terrestrial_a or_o human_a thing_n can_v be_v find_v in_o my_o doctrine_n therefore_o you_o can_v convince_v the_o same_o of_o a_o lie_n wherefore_o if_o i_o tell_v you_o the_o truth_n why_o do_v you_o not_o beeleve_v i_o if_o so_o be_v you_o can_v juste_o speak_v evell_a of_o my_o doctrine_n why_o do_v you_o refuse_v to_o believe_v the_o same_o r._n by_o this_o place_n we_o learn_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v he_o that_o speak_v the_o truth_n without_o all_o contradiction_n certain_a of_o the_o jew_n refuse_v to_o hear_v christ_n because_o he_o preach_v without_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n othersome_a because_o none_o of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr and_o ruler_n heléeve_v on_o he_o many_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o hear_v he_o because_o he_o be_v a_o galilean_a and_o the_o rest_n can_v not_o away_o with_o his_o doctrine_n because_o he_o regard_v not_o the_o decree_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o father_n but_o the_o lord_n the_o author_n of_o truth_n urge_v against_o all_o these_o thing_n show_v that_o he_o know_v no_o reason_n that_o shall_v stay_v any_o man_n from_o beléeve_v the_o truth_n wherefore_o then_o do_v not_o man_n in_o our_o time_n seek_v the_o truth_n to_o what_o purpose_n do_v they_o seek_v for_o so_o many_o excuse_n if_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o true_a which_o the_o minister_n do_v teach_v let_v they_o be_v confute_v by_o evident_a argument_n if_o they_o be_v true_a why_o be_v they_o not_o quiet_o receyve_v one_o say_v this_o doctrine_n be_v new_a another_o say_v that_o it_o be_v scismaticall_a another_o say_v that_o it_o appertain_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o refourme_v doctrine_n others_z object_n the_o father_n other_o the_o counsel_n other_o ecclesiastical_a ordinance_n and_o some_o seek_v to_o set_v custom_n against_o the_o gospel_n but_o what_o need_v these_o delay_n let_v they_o say_v simp_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o true_a but_o let_v they_o prove_v it_o also_o if_o they_o be_v not_o able_a so_o to_o do_v why_o do_v they_o not_o subscribe_v unto_o the_o truth_n you_o shall_v hear_v the_o cause_n 47._o he_o that_o be_v of_o god_n hear_v god_n word_n you_o therefore_o hear_v they_o not_o because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o god_n b._n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o which_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n he_o which_o be_v elect_v of_o god_n he_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o receyve_v the_o same_o by_o faith_n c._n now_o christ_n more_o vehement_o invey_v against_o the_o jew_n be_v assure_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o doctrine_n for_o their_o impiety_n be_v not_o obscure_a when_o they_o be_v so_o obstinate_a in_o reject_v the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o have_v show_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v object_v unto_o he_o which_o he_o have_v not_o teach_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n he_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o they_o have_v no_o felloweshippe_n with_o god_n because_o they_o hear_v not_o r_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v therefore_o you_o do_v not_o believe_v because_o you_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o god_n but_o the_o child_n of_o lie_a satan_n the_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o merueile_v if_o you_o receive_v not_o my_o word_n which_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o he_o which_o be_v of_o god_n hear_v god_n word_n 44._o 1._o cor._n 44._o but_o he_o which_o be_v of_o satan_n contemn_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n bu_n there_o be_v therefore_o no_o other_o cause_n why_o you_o hear_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o i_o speak_v neither_o receive_v nor_o believe_v they_o than_o this_o because_o you_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o god_n but_o of_o the_o devil_n m._n to_o be_v of_o god_n in_o this_o place_n be_v not_o to_o be_v bear_v or_o regenerate_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o word_n of_o god_n but_o to_o be_v elect_v and_o predestinate_a to_o life_n before_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n ●_o act_n ●3_n ●_o whereupon_o also_o the_o christian_n faith_n be_v call_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v beléeve_v so_o many_o as_o be_v foreordayn_v unto_o life_n so_o that_o although_o they_o be_v by_o nature_n blind_a and_o the_o child_n of_o wrath_n yet_o notwithstanding_o when_o the_o time_n of_o their_o call_n come_v they_o receyve_v that_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o some_o call_v the_o prevent_a spyrite_n and_o their_o heart_n be_v open_v that_o they_o may_v receyve_v the_o seed_n of_o god_n word_n through_o the_o which_o be_v apprehend_v by_o faith_n they_o be_v iustify_v and_o regenerate_v example_n of_o this_o we_o have_v in_o the_o maid_n that_o wrought_v purple_a of_o who_o luke_n testify_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n c._n by_o this_o place_n therefore_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o more_o manifest_a sign_n of_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n than_o when_o a_o man_n can_v bear_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n although_o otherwise_o in_o the_o show_n he_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o angel_n whereas_o if_o so_o be_v we_o willing_o embrace_v the_o same_o we_o have_v as_o it_o be_v a_o visyble_a sign_n of_o our_o election_n for_o he_o which_o have_v the_o word_n have_v god_n himself_o but_o he_o which_o reject_v the_o same_o deprive_v himself_o both_o of_o life_n and_o also_o if_o righteousness_n wherefore_o we_o ought_v to_o fear_v nothing_o more_o than_o lest_o we_o fall_v into_o this_o horrible_a judgement_n a._n for_o it_o be_v no_o light_a commination_n where_o with_o christ_n threaten_v the_o jew_n say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o you_o 21.43_o mat._n 21.43_o and_o give_v to_o a_o nation_n that_o will_v bring_v forth_o better_a fruit_n of_o the_o same_o 48._o then_o answer_v the_o jew_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o say_n we_o not_o well_o that_o thou_o be_v a_o samaritane_n and_o have_v the_o devil_n m._n this_o answer_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n scribe_n and_o phariseis_n contain_v a_o impudent_a &_o malicious_a slander_v c._n more_o and_o more_o they_o bewray_v how_o that_o they_o be_v bewitch_v of_o satan_n who_o be_v plain_o convince_v yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o rush_v forth_o even_o through_o the_o midst_n of_o desperation_n b._n thus_o be_v convict_v impiety_n wont_a to_o fare_v when_o it_o be_v not_o able_a to_o answer_v to_o the_o truth_n than_o it_o fall_v to_o rail_v and_o slander_v they_o be_v manifest_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n therefore_o they_o reply_v again_o without_o any_o show_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o samaritane_n and_o have_v the_o devil_n mean_v by_o this_o double_a slander_v to_o declare_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o detestable_a man_n and_o lead_v with_o a_o evyll_n spyrite_n because_o the_o jew_n account_v the_o samaritan_n for_o apostatas_fw-la and_o corrupter_n of_o the_o law_n so_o often_o as_o they_o intend_v to_o defame_v any_o man_n they_o will_v call_v he_o a_o samaritane_n now_o therefore_o because_o they_o have_v no_o great_a crime_n wherewithal_o they_o may_v defame_v christ_n they_o rashlye_a and_o without_o judgement_n use_v that_o common_a reproach_n r._n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v what_o dare_v thou_o defend_v the_o truth_n of_o thy_o doctrine_n before_o we_o see_v thou_o be_v worse_o than_o any_o heretic_n or_o apostata_fw-la for_o thy_o doctrine_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o satan_n and_o not_o to_o god_n thou_o speak_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o not_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n for_o we_o be_v holy_a people_n a_o priestlye_o stock_n a_o holy_a nation_n and_o such_o a_o nation_n to_o who_o god_n have_v whoal_o give_v himself_o but_o thou_o according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o samaritan_n pronounce_v we_o not_o to_o be_v of_o god_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v therefore_o that_o thy_o false_a doctrine_n be_v of_o satan_n bu_n the_o like_a reproach_n and_o sclaunder_n they_o cast_v forth_o at_o this_o day_n who_o be_v gréeve_v at_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n for_o they_o call_v the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n apostate_n seditious_a personne_n schismatic_n worker_n by_o develle_n seducer_n and_o such_o like_a r._n lest_o the_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a may_v seem_v to_o have_v no_o cause_n of_o their_o unbeléefe_n 49._o jesus_n answer_v i_o have_v not_o the_o devil_n but_o i_o honour_v my_o father_n and_o
yourselves_o whoale_n you_o abide_v desperate_a m._n they_o be_v therefore_o blind_a whereupon_o in_o another_o place_n he_o call_v they_o blind_a leader_n of_o the_o blind_a but_o not_o as_o be_v the_o idiot_n and_o simple_a sort_n i4_n mat._n i5_n i4_n otherwise_o he_o will_v have_v say_v as_o he_o say_v here_o they_o shall_v have_v have_v no_o sin_n if_o so_o be_v they_o have_v be_v blind_a and_o ignorant_a of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n as_o be_v the_o unlearned_a c._n notwithstanding_o when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o which_o be_v blind_a have_v no_o sin_n he_o do_v not_o thereby_o excuse_v ignorance_n as_o though_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n only_o he_o geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o the_o disease_n may_v have_v a_o remedy_n when_o the_o same_o be_v feel_v in_o time_n because_o when_o the_o blind_a man_n come_v to_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o sight_n the_o lord_n be_v ready_a to_o help_v r._n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v have_v say_v if_o so_o be_v you_o know_v your_o blindness_n the_o sin_n of_o unbeléefe_n will_v not_o abide_v in_o you_o but_o puttinge_v away_o infidellitie_n you_o will_v believe_v in_o i_o but_o because_o you_o do_v not_o know_v your_o blindness_n therefore_o you_o abide_v unbeléeving_a c._n for_o they_o be_v incurable_a who_o have_v no_o feeling_n of_o their_o sin_n despise_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n r._n therefore_o that_o be_v horrible_a blindness_n to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o our_o blindness_n even_o as_o not_o to_o know_v our_o sickness_n be_v almost_o a_o disease_n incurable_a the_o which_o we_o may_v behold_v in_o mad_a man_n and_o as_o the_o first_o step_n to_o recover_v health_n be_v to_o acknowledge_v our_o infirmity_n evenso_fw-la the_o first_o step_n to_o faith_n be_v to_o know_v our_o impiety_n and_o ignorance_n 8_z i_o joh._n i_o 8_z to_o this_o effect_n appertain_v that_o which_o saint_n john_n have_v write_v in_o another_o place_n say_v if_o we_o confess_v our_o sin_n he_o be_v faithful_a and_o just_a to_o forgeeve_v we_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n shall_v cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n b._n we_o see_v also_o here_o plain_o that_o he_o condemn_v this_o sin_n namely_o the_o refusal_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o truth_n when_o man_n know_v the_o same_o whereupon_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v pardon_n &_o remission_n with_o saint_n paul_n which_o sin_n only_o by_o ignorance_n and_o either_o neglect_v the_o truth_n or_o else_o persecute_v the_o same_o the_o truth_n shall_v be_v know_v at_o the_o length_n to_o the_o reprobate_n in_o suchwise_o that_o they_o themselves_o shall_v say_v they_o see_v and_o shall_v have_v all_o collar_n and_o pretence_n of_o ignorance_n take_v away_o from_o they_o such_o also_o be_v these_o phariseis_n they_o have_v hear_v those_o thing_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o see_v such_o thing_n in_o he_o that_o their_o mind_n be_v constrain_v to_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o satan_n do_v so_o carry_v they_o that_o they_o do_v persecute_v he_o with_o mortal_a hatred_n therefore_o their_o sin_n remain_v ghost_n sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n without_o pardon_n or_o remission_n they_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n set_v themselves_o so_o open_o against_o the_o word_n and_o deed_n of_o the_o lord_n bu_n we_o have_v also_o here_o a_o sure_a and_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o the_o truth_n pronounce_v against_o the_o maintainer_n of_o free_a will_n for_o if_o these_o man_n be_v blind_a that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o they_o know_v their_o servitude_n infirmity_n and_o corruption_n by_o sin_n they_o shall_v be_v illuminate_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n but_o now_o because_o they_o see_v that_o be_v because_o they_o boast_v of_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o do_v not_o only_o magnify_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n blindness_n and_o sin_v remain_v in_o they_o and_o he_o say_v plain_o your_o sin_n remain_v for_o in_o saint_n also_o there_o be_v sin_n but_o it_o be_v take_v away_o it_o be_v not_o impute_v it_o do_v not_o remain_v in_o the_o wicked_a only_o there_o remain_v sin_n and_o damnation_n m._n there_o be_v therefore_o a_o pass_a sin_n and_o a_o remain_a sin_n to_o this_o effect_n parteyn_v this_o say_n he_o which_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n have_v everlasting_a life_n but_o he_o which_o believe_v not_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o see_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o let_v we_o therefore_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n let_v we_o confess_v unto_o he_o our_o sin_n that_o we_o be_v illuminate_v by_o he_o and_o absolve_v from_o our_o sin_n we_o may_v come_v at_o the_o last_o to_o that_o light_n which_o no_o man_n can_v attain_v unto_o ❧_o the_o ten_o chapter_n 1._o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o that_o enter_v not_o in_o by_o the_o door_n into_o the_o sheepefoulde_n but_o clyme_v up_o some_o other_o way_n the_o same_o be_v a_o thief_n and_o a_o robber_n very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o m._n because_v the_o priest_n scribe_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr do_v not_o only_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o christ_n but_o also_o do_v challenge_v unto_o themselves_o power_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o people_n of_o god_n even_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v their_o true_a pastor_n and_o guide_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o abide_v that_o the_o unlearned_a multitude_n shall_v believe_v in_o christ_n and_o shall_v follow_v he_o as_o sheep_n do_v their_o sheapehearde_n the_o lord_n do_v very_o well_o boath_n to_o the_o confusion_n of_o false_a pastor_n and_o also_o to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o simple_a propound_v all_o this_o whole_a matter_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o proverb_n by_o which_o he_o do_v describe_v what_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o true_a and_o false_a pastor_n which_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o office_n of_o feed_n the_o sheep_n c._n and_o because_o the_o fewness_n and_o small_a number_n of_o the_o faithful_a may_v much_o discredit_v his_o doctrine_n he_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o not_o all_o which_o usurp_v office_n in_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v in_o the_o number_n of_o pastor_n and_o sheep_n sheaphearde_n sheep_n and_o the_o sheaphearde_n but_o that_o the_o true_a pastor_n be_v discern_v from_o reprobate_n and_o the_o true_a sheep_n from_o those_o that_o be_v counterfeit_v by_o this_o mark_n if_o so_o be_v that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a scope_n and_o the_o beginning_n and_o end_v of_o all_o thing_n this_o admonition_n be_v necessary_a for_o all_o age_n and_o time_n but_o especial_o for_o this_o our_o age_n for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o more_o pestilent_a plague_n to_o the_o church_n than_o when_o wolf_n creep_v in_o under_o the_o cloak_n of_o pastoure_n christ_n do_v plain_o here_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v count_v for_o pastoure_n which_o boast_v that_o they_o ought_v so_o to_o be_v take_v and_o account_v of_o or_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v nomber_v among_o the_o sheep_n which_o glory_n in_o external_a sign_n he_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o judaical_a church_n and_o in_o this_o point_n there_o be_v no_o great_a difference_n between_o that_o and_o we_o he_o that_o enter_v not_o in_o r._n christ_n do_v not_o by_o naked_a and_o bare_a word_n even_o at_o the_o first_o teach_v that_o he_o be_v a_o shepherd_n but_o by_o this_o parable_n suspend_v the_o mind_n of_o his_o auditoure_n that_o afterward_o by_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o same_o he_o may_v make_v that_o which_o in_o the_o beginning_n they_o hear_v not_o without_o admiration_n and_o a_o desire_n to_o know_v to_o sink_v deper_n into_o their_o mind_n c._n but_o they_o do_v foolish_o which_o discus_fw-la very_o curious_o every_o part_n of_o this_o parable_n let_v it_o therefore_o suffice_v and_o satisfy_v to_o hold_v this_o sum_n namely_o that_o forsomuch_o as_o christ_n make_v his_o church_n like_a unto_o a_o shepfould_v into_o the_o which_o god_n gather_v all_o his_o sheep_n together_o he_o compare_v himself_o to_o a_o door_n because_o there_o be_v no_o other_o entrance_n into_o the_o church_n than_o by_o he_o hereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v good_a pastoure_n which_o lead_v the_o right_a way_n unto_o christ_n they_o which_o geve_v themselves_o to_o christ_n alone_a be_v right_o say_v to_o be_v gather_v into_o god_n shepfould_v and_o to_o be_v of_o his_o flock_n moreover_o all_o this_o be_v refer_v to_o doctrine_n for_o see_v in_o christ_n all_o the_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n be_v hide_v he_o which_o swerve_v from_o he_o be_v neither_o in_o the_o right_a way_n nor_o yet_o be_v like_a to_o enter_v in_o by_o the_o door_n therefore_o we_o shall_v easy_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o who_o
and_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v find_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n if_o any_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o sin_n pasture_n faith_n find_v pasture_n do_v hunger_n after_o righteousness_n if_o any_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o affliction_n do_v hunger_n after_o consolation_n if_o any_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o death_n do_v hunger_n after_o life_n he_o shall_v find_v pasture_n in_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v righteousness_n consolation_n and_o life_n m._n he_o shall_v enjoy_v all_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v at_o the_o full_a a._n this_o be_v even_o the_o very_a same_o which_o he_o express_v at_o a_o neither_o time_n say_v 6.35_o joh._n 6.35_o he_o which_o come_v unto_o i_o shall_v not_o hunger_n and_o he_o which_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v not_o thirst_v bu_n read_v also_o the_o three_o and_o twenty_o psalm_n 10._o a_o thief_n come_v not_o but_o for_o to_o steal_v kill_v and_o to_o destroy_v i_o be_o come_v that_o they_o may_v have_v life_n and_o that_o they_o may_v have_v it_o more_o abundant_o by_o a_o sertaine_a antithesis_fw-la christ_n compare_v his_o word_n and_o gospel_n with_o false_a doctrine_n c._n and_o do_v as_o it_o be_v pull_v we_o by_o the_o ear_n lest_o fall_v a_o sleep_n the_o minister_n of_o satan_n do_v circumvent_v we_o before_o we_o be_v aware_a for_o our_o overmuch_o security_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o be_v naked_a on_o every_o side_n we_o be_v in_o the_o danger_n of_o false_a doctrine_n because_o we_o be_v not_o circumspect_a and_o fearful_a enough_o of_o so_o many_o false_a teacher_n it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n therefore_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n affirm_v that_o false_a teacher_n how_o smooth_o soever_o they_o insinuate_v themselves_o do_v always_o bring_v with_o they_o deadly_a poison_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v be_v the_o more_o careful_a to_o drive_v they_o away_o a._n the_o like_a admonition_n the_o apostle_n paul_n geve_v we_o say_v take_v heed_n that_o no_o man_n spoil_v you_o through_o vain_a philosophy_n again_o he_o say_v now_o i_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n mark_v they_o which_o cause_n division_n and_o geve_v occasion_n of_o evell_a i7_n rom._n 6_o i7_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v and_o avoid_v they_o for_o they_o that_o be_v such_o serve_v not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o their_o own_o belly_n and_o with_o sweet_a and_o flatter_a word_n deceive_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o innocent_n also_o he_o say_v for_o such_o false_a aposteles_a be_v deceitful_a worker_n transform_v into_o the_o aposteles_a of_o christ_n and_o no_o marvel_n for_o satan_n himself_o be_v transform_v into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n 11.13_o 2_z cor_n 11.13_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o great_a thing_n though_o his_o minister_n be_v transform_v as_o the_o miinister_n of_o righteousenesse_n who_o end_n shall_v be_v according_a to_o their_o work_n bu_n these_o thing_n be_v apply_v unto_o those_o which_o seek_v not_o after_o christ_n and_o enter_v not_o in_o by_o the_o door_n these_o very_o rob_v god_n and_o christ_n of_o his_o honour_n for_o when_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v give_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o church_n whereby_o they_o shall_v have_v learn_v that_o all_o fullness_n be_v in_o christ_n who_o be_v give_v to_o we_o of_o god_n to_o be_v wisdom_n righteousenes_n sanctification_n and_o redemtion_n they_o in_o steed_n of_o these_o do_v set_v before_o man_n 13_o 1._o cor._n i_o 13_o human_a invention_n the_o decréese_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o church_n whereby_o they_o may_v learn_v that_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o merit_n that_o they_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n by_o monastical_a vow_n by_o the_o intercession_n and_o worship_v of_o saint_n by_o the_o cellebration_n of_o the_o mass_n by_o indulgencis_n and_o pardon_n which_o they_o sell_v for_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n defraud_v and_o spoil_v the_o ●oore_a r._n they_o repeat_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o withal_o they_o add_v their_o own_o invention_n concern_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o work_n the_o merit_n of_o saint_n the_o pain_n of_o purgatorye_n and_o concern_v the_o toy_n of_o the_o mass_n by_o which_o they_o deceyve_v seduce_v and_o at_o the_o last_o slay_v the_o conscience_n of_o man_n which_o hear_v they_o bu_n for_o they_o themselves_o kill_v man_n soul_n as_o when_o they_o preach_v salvation_n where_o no_o salvation_n be_v life_n where_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o death_n grace_n where_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o wrath_n kill_n the_o sincere_a confessor_n of_o the_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n and_o above_o all_o thing_n they_o take_v from_o the_o sheep_n their_o lawful_a liberty_n and_o do_v oppress_v they_o with_o unjust_a and_o cruel_a law_n show_v themselves_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v tyrant_n and_o not_o shéephearde_n against_o such_o sheapheardes_n the_o lord_n speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n say_v 5_o ezec_fw-la 34.2_o zach_n twelve_o 5_o woe_n unto_o the_o shepherd_n of_o israel_n that_o feed_v themselves_o shall_v not_o the_o shepherd_n feed_v the_o flock_n you_o eat_v the_o fat_a and_o clothe_v you_o with_o the_o will_v you_o kill_v they_o that_o be_v feed_v but_o you_o feed_v not_o the_o sheep_n now_o let_v all_o those_o which_o at_o this_o day_n glory_n and_o boast_v of_o the_o title_n and_o name_n of_o pastor_n try_v and_o examine_v their_o manner_n disposition_n word_n and_o deed_n and_o let_v they_o judge_v hereby_o whether_o they_o be_v shéephearde_n or_o théeve_n and_o murderer_n i_o be_o come_v that_o they_o may_v have_v life_n bu_n this_o he_o add_v to_o the_o word_n go_v before_o by_o a_o antithesis_n or_o comparison_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o come_v that_o the_o sheep_n may_v have_v life_n and_o the_o same_o abundant_o and_o eternal_o and_o by_o life_n he_o understand_v all_o those_o benefit_n which_o the_o faith_n and_o diligence_n of_o shepherd_n geve_v unto_o the_o sheep_n but_o especial_o everlasting_a life_n which_o christ_n jesus_n the_o prince_n of_o sheaphearde_n only_o geve_v 22._o ezec_fw-la 34_o i6_n 22._o i_o will_v feed_v my_o sheep_n say_v the_o lord_n i_o will_v seek_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v and_o bring_v again_o that_o which_o be_v drive_v away_o and_o will_v bind_v up_o that_o which_o be_v break_v and_o will_v strengthen_v the_o weak_a c._n this_o christ_n appli_v to_o himself_o and_o geve_v we_o also_o to_o understande_v that_o they_o only_o be_v give_v over_o for_o a_o pray_v unto_o théeve_n and_o wolf_n which_o will_v not_o be_v with_o in_o the_o reach_n and_o compass_v of_o his_o shéepehooke_n and_o to_o comfort_v we_o the_o more_o he_o promise_v life_n yea_o everlasting_a life_n to_o those_o which_o will_v not_o fall_v away_o from_o he_o and_o very_o the_o more_o that_o a_o man_n profit_v in_o the_o faith_n the_o more_o never_o he_o come_v to_o the_o fullness_n of_o life_n because_o the_o spirit_n grow_v in_o he_o which_o be_v life_n notwithstanding_o there_o be_v some_o which_o refer_v this_o more_o ample_a life_n to_o that_o which_o immediate_o follow_v this_o present_a life_n when_o death_n have_v neither_o place_n nor_o power_n 11._o i_o be_o the_o good_a shepherd_n a_o good_a shepherd_n geve_v his_o life_n for_o the_o sheep_n bu_n now_o the_o lord_n go_v forward_o to_o explicate_v the_o rest_n also_o of_o the_o propound_a parable_n he_o have_v say_v he_o which_o enter_v in_o by_o the_o door_n be_v the_o shepherd_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o straight_o after_o that_o he_o say_v i_o come_v that_o they_o may_v have_v life_n and_o that_o they_o may_v have_v it_o more_o abundant_o and_o now_o more_o plain_o he_o expound_v all_o these_o thing_n and_o say_v i_o be_o the_o good_a shepherd_n which_o enter_v in_o by_o the_o door_n ▪_o and_o which_o do_v all_o thing_n lawful_o and_o not_o by_o subtlety_n i_o teach_v that_o truth_n and_o salvation_n ought_v to_o be_v seek_v there_o where_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o i_o which_o be_o the_o true_a lively_a and_o most_o mighty_a son_n of_o god_n m_o for_o i_o be_o that_o good_a shephearde_n of_o who_o the_o prophet_n have_v prophesy_v in_o diverse_a place_n 34.23_o esay_n 40.11_o eze._n 34.23_o christ_n therefore_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o person_n of_o a_o shepherd_n and_o preach_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o only_a shepherd_n as_o in_o very_a deed_n this_o honour_n and_o title_n belong_v unto_o none_o but_o to_o he_o for_o so_o many_o as_o be_v faithful_a pastoure_n of_o the_o church_n because_o he_o raise_v they_o up_o he_o endu_v they_o with_o necessary_a gift_n govern_v they_o with_o his_o spirit_n and_o work_v in_o they_o the_o which_o let_v not_o but_o that_o he_o
tyranny_n towards_o another_o man_n flock_n m._n christ_n use_v the_o present_a tense_n to_o declare_v that_o he_o be_v ready_o to_o suffer_v death_n for_o his_o sheep_n 16._o other_o sheep_n i_o have_v also_o which_o be_v not_o of_o this_o fold_n they_o also_o must_v i_o bring_v and_o they_o shall_v hear_v my_o voice_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o sheepefould_a and_o one_o shepherd_n other_o sheep_n i_o have_v c._n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o in_o speak_v these_o word_n he_o have_v respeect_a unto_o the_o gentile_n bu_n mind_v to_o show_v that_o the_o gentile_n also_o pertain_v to_o the_o congregation_n of_o god_n people_n but_o wherefore_o then_o and_o how_o do_v he_o call_v they_o other_o sheep_n which_o be_v not_o of_o this_o fold_n of_o what_o fold_n i_o pray_v you_o be_v they_o not_o be_v they_o not_o of_o the_o shéepfoulde_n of_o christ_n no_o verilye_o but_o of_o the_o shéepfoulde_n of_o the_o jewishe_a synagogue_n c._n for_o he_o call_v the_o gather_v together_o of_o the_o old_a people_n a_o shéepfould_v by_o which_o collection_n they_o be_v take_v from_o among_o other_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n grow_v to_o one_o body_n and_o the_o people_n of_o god_n for_o god_n do_v so_o severe_a the_o jew_n to_o himself_o from_o among_o other_o people_n that_o by_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n he_o do_v as_o it_o be_v hedge_n and_o fence_v they_o in_o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v mix_v with_o the_o unbeléeving_a howbeit_o the_o door_n of_o the_o fold_n be_v the_o free_a covenaunt_n of_o god_n concern_v everlasting_a life_n establish_v in_o christ_n therefore_o he_o call_v they_o other_o sheep_n which_o have_v not_o the_o same_o mark_n but_o be_v of_o another_o kind_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o the_o pastoral_n office_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o shut_v up_o in_o a_o corner_n of_o jewrye_n but_o be_v extend_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n bu_n for_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o in_o jewrye_n and_o in_o galilee_n but_o in_o all_o place_n of_o the_o world_n for_o as_o there_o be_v many_o wolf_n within_o the_o church_n so_o without_o there_o be_v many_o sheep_n c._n for_o the_o unbeléeving_a in_o themselves_o can_v be_v think_v nothing_o less_o than_o sheep_n wherefore_o this_o do_v appertain_v to_o the_o secréete_n election_n of_o the_o father_n because_o we_o be_v sheep_n already_o unto_o god_n before_o we_o feel_v he_o to_o be_v our_o shepherd_n even_o as_o in_o another_o place_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v enemy_n unto_o god_n at_o such_o time_n as_o he_o love_v us._n for_o the_o which_o cause_n also_o paul_n say_v that_o god_n rather_o know_v we_o than_o we_o he_o 5.10_o gala._n 5.10_o m._n they_o therefore_o which_o at_o the_o first_o be_v far_o from_o god_n be_v make_v neighbour_n and_o cittezen_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o houshoulde_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n they_o also_o must_v i_o bring_v c._n he_o geve_v we_o here_o to_o understand_v that_o god_n election_n be_v sure_a insomuche_o that_o nothing_o can_v perish_v which_o he_o will_v shall_v be_v save_v for_o the_o secreete_a counsel_n and_o purpose_n of_o god_n by_o which_o man_n be_v ordain_v to_o life_n be_v in_o due_a time_n make_v manifest_a by_o call_v and_o this_o call_n also_o be_v effectual_a when_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n regenerate_v to_o himself_o those_o to_o be_v his_o child_n which_o at_o the_o first_o be_v bear_v of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n m._n furthermore_o christ_n challenge_v this_o bring_n or_o lead_v of_o the_o sheep_n to_o himself_o when_o as_o notwithstanding_o he_o do_v the_o same_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o by_o work_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereupon_o paul_n also_o call_v the_o apostle_n minister_n &_o joynt-worker_n or_o fellowelabourer_n of_o god_n 3.9_o i_o cor._n 3.9_o christ_n therefore_o bring_v his_o sheep_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o which_o he_o inspire_v open_v illuminate_v regenerate_v and_o govern_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o elect_a question_n c._n notwithstanding_o here_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v how_o the_o gentile_n be_v bring_v that_o they_o may_v be_v enfold_v with_o the_o jew_n for_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o the_o jew_n shall_v reject_v and_o forsake_v the_o covenaunt_n which_o god_n have_v make_v with_o their_o father_n that_o they_o may_v become_v christ_n disciple_n again_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v under_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n that_o be_v ingraff_v into_o christ_n they_o may_v be_v associate_n with_o the_o jew_n here_o we_o must_v learn_v the_o distinction_n between_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o covenaunt_n and_o external_a accession_n answer_v answer_v or_o come_n to_o for_o the_o gentile_n can_v not_o otherwise_o come_v to_o the_o faith_n in_o christ_n than_o by_o embrace_v that_o everlasting_a covenaunt_n in_o the_o which_o be_v found_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n thus_o be_v these_o prophecy_v fulfil_v 19.18_o esai_n 19.18_o in_o that_o day_n shall_v five_o city_n in_o the_o land_n of_o egipte_n speak_v the_o language_n of_o canaan_n and_o again_o in_o those_o day_n shall_v ten_o man_n take_v hold_n out_o of_o all_o language_n of_o the_o nation_n 8.23_o zach._n 8.23_o even_o take_v hold_n of_o the_o skirt_n of_o he_o that_o be_v a_o jew_n and_o say_v we_o will_v go_v with_o you_o also_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o shall_v come_v from_o far_o and_o ascend_v into_o mount_n zion_n therefore_o be_v abraham_n call_v the_o father_n of_o many_o nation_n xi_o math._n 8._o xi_o because_o there_o shall_v come_v from_o the_o east_n and_o from_o the_o west_n and_o rest_n with_o he_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o thus_o we_o be_v join_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o unitye_n of_o faith_n as_o touch_v the_o substance_n but_o the_o ceremony_n be_v abolish_v lest_o they_o shall_v let_v he_o from_o reach_v forth_o his_o hand_n unto_o us._n and_o they_o shall_v hear_v my_o voice_n bu_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o shall_v receyve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o because_o they_o be_v of_o god_n therefore_o they_o know_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n m._n therefore_o as_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o christ_n to_o lead_v and_o govern_v we_o so_o also_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o obey_v he_o the_o sheep_n by_o nature_n hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o sheaphearde_n and_o the_o elect_v have_v the_o same_o property_n not_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o their_o first_o nativitye_n but_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n for_o he_o which_o before_o we_o be_v bear_v choose_v we_o to_o life_n the_o same_o also_o endue_v our_o mind_n with_o this_o that_o when_o the_o hour_n of_o our_o call_n come_v we_o shall_v hear_v our_o heavenly_a sheaphearde_n call_v we_o and_o shall_v follow_v his_o voice_n thus_o it_o be_v write_v and_o they_o believe_v i4_n act_n i3_n i4_n so_o many_o as_o be_v foreordain_v to_o life_n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n lest_o we_o judge_v any_o man_n rash_o as_o though_o he_o shall_v not_o appertain_v to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o elect_a which_o do_v not_o come_v without_o delay_n be_v call_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o the_o apostle_n paul_n do_v straight_o way_n believe_v and_o obey_v the_o gospel_n xlij_o gala._n ay_o xlij_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o they_o be_v god_n elect_v and_o choose_v which_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o this_o shepherd_n but_o it_o be_v not_o by_o and_o by_o so_o certain_a that_o they_o be_v reprobate_n which_o do_v not_o forth_o with_o hear_v but_o make_v delay_n for_o a_o tyme._n and_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o sheapfoulde_v bu_n when_o the_o gentile_n have_v receyve_v the_o evangelicall_a faith_n they_o shall_v be_v associate_v and_o join_v to_o the_o faithful_a people_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o so_o of_o they_o both_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o fold_n that_o be_v of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n there_o shall_v be_v one_o church_n one_o god_n say_v paul_n one_o faith_n 4.4_o ephe._n 4.4_o and_o one_o baptism_n therefore_o we_o must_v be_v one_o even_o as_o we_o be_v call_v into_o one_o hope_n church_n unity_n of_o the_o church_n m._n hereby_o we_o see_v whereof_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n consist_v of_o the_o which_o the_o papist_n babble_n and_o prate_v so_o much_o at_o this_o day_n they_o place_v the_o unitye_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o catholic_a obedience_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o though_o this_o be_v the_o true_a unitye_n of_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o under_o the_o universal_a head_n and_o to_o use_v these_o rite_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o
a_o dead_a man_n that_o one_o shall_v take_v a_o jorny_a for_o he_o a_o man_n that_o shall_v so_o speak_v may_v seem_v to_o human_a reason_n very_o foolish_a but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n speak_v another_o manner_n of_o thing_n when_o he_o say_v let_v we_o go_v unto_o he_o the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o a_o dead_a man_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a for_o he_o bring_v life_n with_o he_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n he_o shall_v come_v to_o dead_a man_n and_o raise_v they_o up_o to_o life_n which_o the_o strength_n of_o mortal_a man_n can_v never_o do_v r._n we_o see_v also_o how_o great_a care_n christ_n have_v for_o those_o which_o be_v his_o lazarus_n be_v sick_a die_v and_o feel_v not_o the_o help_n of_o christ_n but_o yet_o nevertheless_o christ_n speak_v of_o he_o and_o be_v very_o careful_a for_o he_o and_o his_o care_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a for_o lazarus_n shall_v be_v raise_v from_o death_n a._n the_o life_n come_v with_o speed_n to_o put_v death_n to_o flight_n 16._o then_o say_v thomas_n which_o be_v call_v didimus_n unto_o his_o fellow_n disciple_n let_v we_o also_o go_v that_o we_o may_v dye_v with_o he_o then_o say_v thomas_n r._n this_o exhortation_n of_o thomas_n proceed_v rather_o of_o rashness_n then_o of_o faith_n c._n hitherto_o the_o disciple_n have_v go_v about_o to_o withhoulde_v christ_n and_o now_o thomas_n be_v ready_a to_o follow_v but_o without_o faith_n at_o least_o he_o do_v not_o arm_n and_o comfort_v himself_o with_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n to_o follow_v he_o joyful_o and_o with_o a_o good_a courage_n for_o these_o word_n let_v we_o also_o go_v that_o we_o may_v dye_v with_o he_o show_v that_o he_o rather_o despair_v than_o believe_v see_v they_o shall_v have_v be_v assure_v of_o life_n m._n the_o lord_n say_v not_o i_o go_v to_o dye_v in_o jury_n but_o i_o go_v to_o raise_v up_o lazarus_n thomas_n therefore_o shall_v have_v say_v let_v we_o go_v that_o we_o may_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n rather_o than_o let_v we_o go_v and_o dye_v with_o he_o howbeit_o the_o pronoune_n relative_n he_o may_v be_v expound_v as_o well_o of_o lazarus_n as_o of_o christ_n but_o if_o we_o expound_v it_o of_o lazarus_n then_o be_v it_o speak_v ironic_a as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v what_o shall_v it_o profit_v we_o to_o go_v thither_o except_o we_o can_v otherwise_o show_v the_o duty_n of_o friend_n than_o if_o we_o die_v with_o he_o but_o many_o like_o better_a of_o another_o sense_n which_o be_v that_o thomas_n refuse_v not_o to_o dye_v with_o christ_n but_o this_o spring_v of_o rash_a zeal_n because_o he_o ought_v rather_o to_o have_v be_v encourage_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o promise_n moreover_o in_o that_o he_o say_v thomas_n be_v call_v didimus_n be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o thomas_n be_v his_o proper_a name_n and_o didimus_n his_o sir_n name_n for_o the_o same_o which_o the_o greeks_n call_v didimus_n the_o hebrews_n call_v thomas_n 17._o then_o go_v jesus_n and_o find_v that_o he_o have_v lie_v in_o his_o grave_n fowre_a day_n already_o m._n the_o lord_n so_o appoint_v his_o jorny_a that_o he_o come_v to_o bethanie_n the_o fowrth_a day_n after_o the_o departure_n of_o lazarus_n it_o be_v likely_a that_o lazarus_n be_v dead_a too_o day_n before_o christ_n take_v his_o journey_n and_o that_o he_o spend_v other_o two_o day_n before_o he_o end_v the_o same_o he_o may_v have_v come_v soon_o but_o he_o rather_o desire_v to_o find_v he_o dead_a than_o sick_a and_o to_o have_v lie_v four_o day_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n than_o two_o day_n that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o evident_o declare_v his_o divine_a power_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v not_o come_v unto_o bethany_n before_o the_o fowrth_a day_n after_o his_o disceasse_n 18._o bethanie_n be_v nigh_o unto_o jerusalem_n about_o a_o fifteen_o furlonge_v of_o c._n the_o evangelist_n diligent_o prosecute_v those_o thing_n which_o serve_v for_o the_o the_o sertaintie_n of_o the_o story_n he_z sheweth_z how_o never_o jerusalem_n be_v to_o the_o village_n of_o bethanye_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v marvel_v that_o many_o of_o his_o friend_n come_v from_o thence_o to_o comfort_v the_o sister_n who_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v to_o be_v witness_n of_o the_o miracle_n for_o although_o they_o be_v move_v hereunto_o by_o the_o duty_n of_o humanity_n yet_o notwithstanding_o by_o the_o secret_a counsel_n of_o god_n they_o be_v gather_v there_o together_o for_o another_o end_n least_o that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o lazarus_n shall_v be_v obscure_a and_o unknowen_a or_o shall_v have_v only_o domestical_a witness_n bu_n therefore_o god_n by_o his_o wonderful_a counsel_n and_o foresight_n choose_v this_o place_n in_o the_o which_o the_o great_a miracle_n that_o ever_o christ_n wrought_v be_v show_v that_o whether_o the_o phariseis_n will_v or_o no_o the_o very_a deed_n itself_o may_v proclaim_v and_o prove_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o lyve_a god_n c._n but_o hereby_o appear_v the_o wicked_a ingratitude_n of_o that_o people_n who_o by_o and_o by_o forget_v so_o manifest_a a_o show_n token_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n do_v in_o so_o open_a and_o know_v a_o place_n in_o so_o great_a a_o assembly_n of_o man_n and_o almost_o at_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o city_n nay_o the_o jew_n malicious_o shut_v their_o eye_n will_v not_o see_v that_o which_o lie_v open_a before_o their_o eye_n to_o be_v see_v and_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n that_o those_o man_n which_o so_o gréede_o desy_a miracle_n shall_v be_v dull_a and_o senseless_a when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o consideration_n of_o they_o the_o distance_n between_o jerusalem_n and_o bethany_n of_o the_o which_o mention_n be_v make_v here_o be_v less_o than_o two_o mile_n for_o a_o furlong_n contain_v syx_n honder_v foot_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o hoondered_a and_o five_o and_o twenty_o pace_n 19_o and_o many_o of_o the_o jew_n come_v to_o martha_n and_o marie_n to_o comfort_v they_o over_o their_o brother_n m._n what_o manner_n of_o person_n these_o jew_n be_v we_o shall_v see_v in_o that_o which_o follow_v c._n their_o only_a purpose_n be_v to_o comfort_v the_o sister_n for_o their_o dead_a brother_n but_o god_n as_o we_o say_v before_o have_v another_o purpose_n and_o hereby_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o the_o house_n of_o lazarus_n and_o his_o sister_n be_v very_o sumptuous_a and_o well_o furnish_v for_o entertainment_n also_o because_o it_o be_v a_o natural_a thing_n that_o the_o death_n of_o kinsman_n and_o friend_n shall_v cause_v sorrow_n and_o mourning_n this_o duty_n of_o the_o which_o the_o evangelist_n speak_v be_v not_o to_o be_v discommend_v except_o the_o same_o do_v exceed_v 4_o i._o thes_n 4_o a._n necessary_a therefore_o be_v the_o exhortation_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o will_v the_o faithful_a not_o to_o exceed_v in_o bewal_a the_o dead_a m._n it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v noated_a that_o the_o jew_n know_v not_o how_o to_o benefit_n the_o dead_a seek_v so_o much_o as_o they_o can_v to_o comfort_v the_o live_n and_o this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o old_a time_n at_o their_o funeral_n but_o after_o that_o the_o spyrite_n of_o error_n of_o superstition_n and_o of_o gain_v creep_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o bishope_n and_o prelate_n that_o which_o our_o elder_n use_v to_o the_o consolation_n of_o such_o as_o be_v alive_a be_v turn_v to_o obsequi_fw-la and_o help_v of_o the_o dead_a 20._o martha_n as_o soon_o as_o she_o hear_v that_o jesus_n be_v come_v go_v out_o and_o meet_v he_o but_o marie_n sit_v still_o in_o the_o house_n m._n the_o evangelist_n go_v forward_o in_o the_o narration_n of_o the_o history_n and_o he_o begin_v the_o story_n of_o martha_n whereby_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o she_o be_v principal_a in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o house_n either_o for_o that_o she_o be_v the_o elder_a or_o for_o some_o other_o cause_n in_o this_o martha_n we_o have_v a_o example_n boath_n of_o hospitality_n and_o also_o of_o reverence_n martha_n meet_v christ_n boath_n as_o a_o gheste_n and_o also_o as_o her_o lord_n and_o thus_o be_v we_o wont_v to_o go_v forth_o and_o meet_v our_o friend_n to_o entertain_v and_o welcome_v they_o friendly_a so_o abraham_n and_o lotte_n meet_v and_o entertain_v their_o guest_n with_o joy._n so_o the_o subject_n go_v forth_o to_o meet_v with_o king_n and_o prince_n i_o gen._n 18_o i_o gen_n i9_n i_o first_o of_o all_o therefore_o let_v we_o be_v friendly_a in_o entertain_v our_o friend_n and_o guest_n and_o loyal_a with_o reverence_n towards_o our_o elder_n and_o better_n c._o notwithstanding_o it_o may_v be_v that_o martha_n go_v forth_o of_o the_o house_n to_o
though_o he_o be_v dead_a yet_o shall_v he_o live_v bu_n now_o christ_n more_o plainelye_o reveal_v himself_o say_v that_o he_o can_v only_o by_o his_o prayer_n obtain_v life_n but_o also_o that_o he_o be_v the_o life_n itself_o of_o all_o that_o believe_v yea_o the_o live_a god_n which_o can_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o preserve_v in_o life_n m._n he_o know_v that_o martha_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o he_o and_o that_o therefore_o she_o think_v of_o the_o resurrection_n as_o do_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o although_o they_o beléeve_v that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v yet_o notwithstanding_o by_o who_o power_n the_o same_o shall_v be_v they_o know_v not_o because_o they_o want_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o that_o he_o may_v signify_v unto_o martha_n that_o he_o be_v the_o raiser_n up_o and_o quickener_n of_o dead_a man_n by_o who_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v and_o which_o can_v also_o at_o that_o present_a restore_v her_o dead_a brother_n unto_o life_n he_o say_v i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n b._n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o author_n of_o resurrection_n and_o life_n and_o that_o power_n of_o god_n to_o raise_v and_o to_o quicken_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v why_o have_v thou_o respect_v unto_o the_o resurrection_n to_o come_v concern_v the_o which_o thou_o have_v such_o a_o opinion_n as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wrought_v by_o my_o power_n if_o thou_o know_v i_o thou_o will_v also_o know_v that_o i_o have_v power_n give_v i_o to_o raise_v up_o and_o to_o quicken_v and_o therefore_o will_v now_o desire_v i_o to_o raise_v up_o thy_o brother_n c._n therefore_o first_o of_o all_o christ_n affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o resurrection_n and_o and_o the_o life_n and_o afterward_o he_o expound_v boath_n part_n of_o the_o sentence_n severallye_o in_o the_o first_o part_n he_o call_v himself_o the_o resurrection_n because_o by_o order_n man_n be_v restore_v from_o death_n before_o they_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o life_n and_o verilye_o all_o mankind_n be_v overwhelm_v in_o death_n therefore_o no_o man_n shall_v have_v life_n but_o he_o which_o be_v first_o rise_v from_o death_n so_o christ_n teach_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o life_n and_o afterward_o he_o add_v that_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o life_n be_v the_o work_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o the_o exposytion_n which_o follow_v straight_o after_o show_v plain_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o spiritual_a life_n as_o he_z that_o beleve_v on_o i_o wherefore_o then_o be_v christ_n the_o resursurection_n because_o he_o do_v regenerate_v the_o child_n of_o adam_n which_o be_v alienate_v from_o god_n by_o sin_n that_o they_o may_v begin_v to_o lead_v a_o new_a life_n of_o the_o which_o we_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o fifte_a chapter_n go_v before_o and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n very_o notabelye_o interprete_v this_o place_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n let_v they_o babble_n then_o what_o they_o list_v which_o affirm_v that_o man_n be_v prepare_v by_o the_o motion_n of_o nature_n to_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o dead_a walk_n soul_n faith_n be_v the_o resurrrection_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o whereas_o man_n have_v life_n breath_n sense_n understanding_n and_o will_v the_o same_o tend_v to_o destruction_n because_o there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v not_o corrupt_v and_o maim_v and_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o death_n everye_o where_o have_v the_o upper_a hand_n and_o kingdom_n for_o the_o death_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o alienation_n from_o god_n therefore_o they_o which_o believe_v in_o christ_n whereas_o they_o be_v dead_a before_o begin_v to_o live_v because_o fayth_n be_v the_o spiritual_a resurrection_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o do_v after_o a_o sort_n animate_v the_o soul_n itself_o that_o it_o may_v live_v unto_o god_n according_a to_o this_o say_n the_o dead_a shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o here_o it_o shall_v live_v it_o be_v a_o notable_a titel_a of_o faith_n very_o that_o christ_n pour_v life_n into_o we_o deliver_v we_o from_o death_n 9.4_o 3._o king_n i7_n 4_o kin_n 9.4_o m._n and_o that_o which_o christ_n testify_v of_o himself_o can_v belong_v to_o no_o other_o we_o do_v read_v that_o holy_a man_n have_v raise_v up_o some_o from_o the_o dead_a 21._o rom._n i5_n i7_n i_o cor_fw-la i5_n 21._o as_o elias_n and_o elizeus_fw-la but_o yet_o none_o of_o they_o be_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n but_o christ_n only_o 26._o and_o whosoever_o lyve_v and_o beleve_v in_o i_o shall_v never_o dye_v believe_v thou_o this_o the_o lord_n jesus_n have_v speak_v two_o thing_n which_o he_o orderly_o expound_v he_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o resurrection_n when_o he_o teach_v that_o life_n be_v restore_v to_o the_o dead_a by_o faith_n c._n now_o follow_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o second_o member_n namely_o how_o christ_n be_v the_o life_n because_o he_o never_o suffer_v the_o life_n which_o he_o have_v once_o give_v to_o decay_v but_o preserve_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o end_n for_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o man_n in_o so_o great_a fragillitie_n of_o the_o flesh_n if_o so_o be_v they_o have_v once_o get_v life_n shall_v be_v leave_v afterward_o unto_o themselves_o therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o the_o continual_a state_n of_o life_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o power_n of_o the_o same_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v finish_v that_o which_o he_o have_v begin_v and_o the_o faithful_a be_v therefore_o say_v never_o to_o dye_v because_o their_o mind_n be_v renew_a with_o the_o incorruptible_a seed_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n abide_v in_o they_o by_o which_o they_o live_v daily_o for_o although_o the_o body_n be_v subject_a unto_o death_n because_o of_o sin_n yet_o notwithstanding_o i0_n rom_n 8_o i0_n the_o spirit_n be_v life_n for_o righteousenesse_n sake_n i6_n 2._o cor._n 4_o i6_n yea_o though_o the_o outward_a m●n_z perish_v yet_o the_o inward_a man_n be_v renew_a day_n by_o day_n and_o death_n itself_o be_v to_o they_o a_o sertain_a deliverance_n from_o the_o servitude_n of_o death_n 5._o death_n be_v a_o deliverance_n from_o the_o servitude_n of_o death_n john_n 5._o r._n there_o be_v no_o cause_n therefore_o why_o they_o that_o believe_v shall_v fear_v and_o abhor_v death_n because_o they_o have_v pass_v already_o from_o death_n to_o life_n believe_v thou_o this_o c._n christ_n seem_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n to_o speak_v therefore_o of_o the_o spiritual_a life_n that_o he_o may_v withdraw_v the_o mind_n of_o martha_n from_o her_o present_a desire_n martha_n desire_v that_o her_o brother_n may_v be_v restore_v to_o life_n christ_n answer_v that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o a_o far_o more_o excellent_a life_n because_o by_o his_o heavenly_a power_n he_o quicken_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a but_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o double_a grace_n general_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o commend_v the_o spiritual_a life_n which_o he_o geve_v to_o all_o those_o that_o be_v he_o but_o hereby_o he_o mean_v to_o geve_v a_o taste_n of_o that_o power_n which_o he_o will_v afterward_o declare_v in_o raise_v up_o of_o lazarus_n m._n and_o christ_n know_v what_o martha_n beléeve_v and_o what_o she_o beléeve_v not_o he_o do_v not_o demand_v therefore_o this_o question_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v learn_v but_o that_o he_o may_v draw_v from_o she_o a_o confession_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v in_o she_o at_o that_o tyme._n for_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o we_o to_o beeléeve_v with_o the_o hart_n but_o it_o be_v also_o require_v that_o we_o confess_v that_o with_o the_o mouth_n which_o we_o believe_v with_o the_o heart_n a._n furthermore_o christ_n say_v not_o understand_v thou_o this_o but_o beleve_v thou_o this_o for_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n can_v be_v understand_v except_o they_o be_v understode_v by_o faith_n 27._o she_o say_v unto_o he_o you_o lord_n i_o believe_v that_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o world_n m._n it_o seem_v that_o martha_n understand_v not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o she_o know_v not_o that_o which_o she_o say_v she_o beléeve_v namely_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n nevertheless_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o she_o have_v that_o faith_n in_o christ_n that_o she_o doubt_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o his_o word_n c._n and_o to_o prove_v that_o she_o beléeve_v the_o
he_o to_o be_v send_v of_o god_n and_o to_o will_v his_o father_n will_n and_o also_o to_o be_v equal_a with_o he_o in_o power_n for_o he_o wrought_v other_o miracle_n also_o without_o prayer_n 9.25_o mar._n 9.25_o as_o when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o devil_n 8.2_o math._n 8.2_o come_v forth_o of_o he_o and_o to_o the_o leprouse_n man_n which_o say_v if_o thou_o will_v thou_o can_v make_v i_o clean_o 9.6_o math._n 9.6_o i_o will_v be_v thou_o clean_o and_o to_o he_o that_o be_v sick_a of_o the_o paulsey_n arise_v take_v up_o thy_o bed_n and_o walk_v 7.8_o luk._n 7.8_o a._n in_o like_a manner_n when_o he_o raise_v up_o the_o widow_n son_n from_o death_n we_o read_v not_o that_o he_o pray_v but_o say_v only_o young_a man_n i_o say_v unto_o thou_o arise_v 4i_fw-la mar._n 5_o 4i_fw-la neither_o yet_o when_o he_o raise_v up_o jayrus_n daughter_n therefore_o although_o he_o can_v have_v raise_v up_o lazarus_n with_o the_o wag_n of_o his_o finger_n yet_o notwithstanding_o thus_o it_o behove_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v because_o of_o the_o people_n which_o stand_v by_o 43._o and_o when_o he_o thus_o have_v speak_v he_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n lazarus_n come_v forth_o m._n he_o will_v have_v all_o man_n hear_v with_o what_o word_n he_o raise_v up_o the_o dead_a man_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o do_v any_o thing_n supersticiouslye_o or_o by_o magical_a art_n furthermore_o it_o be_v also_o necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v hear_v how_o constant_o and_o without_o doubt_v with_o great_a confidence_n and_o authority_n he_o command_v the_o dead_a man_n to_o arise_v and_o to_o this_o end_n he_o cry_v aloud_o c._n and_o whereas_o he_o touch_v not_o the_o dead_a body_n with_o his_o hand_n but_o cry_v only_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n his_o power_n therein_o do_v more_o manifest_o appear_v and_o withal_o he_o commend_v unto_o we_o the_o wonderful_a and_o secréete_n efficacye_n of_o his_o word_n for_o how_o do_v christ_n restore_v life_n unto_o the_o dead_a but_o by_o his_o word_n wherefore_o in_o the_o raise_n up_o of_o lazarus_n he_o use_v a_o visible_a sign_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n the_o which_o we_o feel_v daily_o by_o the_o scence_n of_o faith_n in_o show_v his_o voice_n to_o be_v a_o quicken_a voice_n r._n as_o therefore_o he_o make_v the_o world_n by_o his_o word_n so_o by_o his_o word_n he_o raise_v the_o dead_a man_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v learn_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v for_o as_o lazarus_n be_v dead_a in_o body_n be_v bring_v again_o by_o the_o word_n to_o corporal_a life_n even_o so_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n by_o the_o word_n receive_v be_v restore_v into_o the_o everlasting_a life_n of_o righteousness_n read_v the_o five_o and_o twenty_o verse_n '_o of_o the_o fifte_a chapter_n before_o 44._o and_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a come_v forth_o bind_v hand_n and_o foot_n with_o grave_a clothes_n and_o his_o face_n be_v bind_v with_o a_o napkin_n jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o loose_v he_o and_o let_v he_o go_v and_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a bu_n this_o be_v a_o manifest_a declaration_n of_o the_o divinitye_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n that_o his_o power_n be_v not_o void_a and_o ineffectual_a but_o lyvely_a and_o quicken_a for_o now_o he_o perform_v that_o in_o very_a deed_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v before_o name_o that_o he_o be_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o lazarus_n which_o be_v dead_a and_o bury_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o come_v forth_o sound_a and_o whoale_n in_o body_n and_o his_o face_n be_v bind_v with_o a_o napkin_n c._n the_o evangelist_n make_v mention_v of_o grave_a clothes_n and_o the_o napkin_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o lazarus_n come_v forth_o of_o the_o sepulchre_n even_o as_o he_o be_v lay_v in_o the_o same_o also_o the_o jew_n retain_v this_o manner_n of_o burial_n at_o this_o day_n wrap_v the_o body_n in_o one_o piece_n of_o linen_n and_o the_o head_n with_o a_o towel_n or_o napkin_n several_a as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o the_o nintéene_a chapter_n follow_v 6.7_o grave_a clothes_n be_v all_o the_o riches_n we_o carry_v out_o of_o this_o world_n with_o us._n i_o tim._n 6.7_o bu_n and_o whereas_o lazarus_n come_v forth_o bind_v hand_n &_o foot_n all_o new_a writer_n almost_o think_v it_o to_o be_v do_v by_o a_o new_a miracle_n but_o hereby_o we_o may_v gather_v and_o see_v what_o riches_n we_o carry_v forth_o of_o this_o world_n with_o we_o name_o our_o wynd_n sheet_n and_o grave_a clothes_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o bring_v nothing_o into_o this_o world_n neither_o may_v we_o carry_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o same_o loose_v he_o and_o let_v he_o go_v c._n this_o be_v also_o command_v to_o be_v do_v to_o amplifye_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o miracle_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v feel_v with_o their_o hand_n the_o work_n of_o god_n which_o they_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n r._n for_o he_o which_o have_v put_v away_o death_n with_o the_o power_n of_o his_o word_n can_v either_o have_v make_v the_o gravecloathe_n to_o have_v fall_v of_o by_o their_o own_o accord_n or_o else_o that_o lazarus_n shall_v have_v unbounde_v himself_o but_o christ_n will_v have_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o stander_n by_o confession_n auricular_a confession_n to_o be_v witness_n of_o the_o miracle_n but_o to_o ridiculous_a be_v the_o papist_n who_o upon_o this_o place_n ground_n their_o auricular_a confession_n christ_n say_v they_o will_v have_v lazarus_n after_o he_o have_v restore_v he_o to_o life_n to_o be_v loose_v by_o his_o disciple_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n except_o the_o church_n also_o forgeve_v we_o our_o sin_n but_o whereupon_o do_v they_o define_v and_o gather_v that_o the_o office_n of_o lose_v lazarus_n be_v enjoin_v the_o disciple_n we_o rather_o gather_v by_o the_o text_n that_o it_o be_v enjoin_v the_o jew_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v have_v all_o scruple_n of_o doubt_v take_v from_o they_o a._n therefore_o this_o place_n serve_v no_o more_o their_o turn_n to_o auricular_a confession_n than_o do_v that_o other_o of_o the_o ten_o leper_n in_o the_o seventéene_a chapter_n of_o luke_n the_o which_o also_o they_o have_v wicked_o abuse_v 45._o then_o many_o of_o the_o jew_n which_o come_v to_o marye_n and_o have_v see_v the_o thing_n which_o jesus_n do_v believe_v on_o he_o bu_n as_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n it_o have_v diverse_a time_n appear_v how_o the_o world_n be_v affect_v at_o the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o at_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o the_o same_o appear_v to_o we_o again_o in_o this_o present_a chapter_n for_o some_o obey_v god_n call_v receive_v the_o holy_a institution_n of_o god_n and_o judge_v right_o of_o god_n work_n even_o as_o do_v these_o man_n who_o see_v the_o wonderful_a miracle_n beléeve_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o messiah_n but_o other_o some_o believe_v not_o obey_v not_o the_o work_n and_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o do_v rather_o speak_v evell_a of_o the_o same_o betray_v the_o same_o and_o go_v about_o with_o all_o their_o strength_n to_o obscure_v and_o overwhelm_v the_o manifest_a truth_n m._n many_o beléeve_v but_o not_o all_o because_o all_o be_v not_o choose_v to_o life_n c._n therefore_o christ_n do_v not_o suffer_v the_o miracle_n which_o he_o have_v wrought_v to_o be_v without_o fruit_n because_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o bring_v some_o unto_o faith_n for_o there_o be_v a_o double_a use_n of_o miracle_n name_o that_o they_o may_v either_o prepare_v we_o unto_o faith_n or_o else_o may_v confirm_v we_o in_o the_o same_o the_o former_a use_n the_o evangelist_n noat_v here_o for_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o they_o of_o who_o he_o speak_v wonder_v &_o reverence_v the_o divine_a power_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v be_v his_o disciple_n otherwise_o the_o bare_a miracle_n can_v not_o suffice_v unto_o faith_n therefore_o by_o the_o word_n believe_v in_o this_o place_n we_o ought_v to_o understande_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o docillitye_n and_o readiness_n to_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o therefore_o the_o jew_n which_o come_v to_o comfort_n mary_n and_o be_v bring_v unto_o faith_n by_o this_o sign_n receyve_v thereby_o no_o small_a consolation_n 46._o but_o some_o of_o they_o go_v their_o way_n to_o the_o phariseis_n and_o tell_v they_o what_o jesus_n have_v do_v m._n here_o the_o nature_n and_o disposition_n of_o perverse_a and_o obstinate_a personne_n be_v describe_v they_o have_v see_v no_o other_o thing_n nor_o less_o than_o the_o
themselves_o and_o think_v that_o they_o shall_v escape_v unpunished_a for_o abuse_v christ_n he_o add_v hear_v a_o horrible_a threaten_n that_o although_o he_o rest_v and_o suffer_v yet_o his_o only_a doctrine_n shall_v suffice_v to_o condemn_v they_o even_o as_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v that_o there_o shall_v need_v no_o other_o judge_n but_o moses_n in_o who_o they_o do_v glory_n therefore_o the_o sense_n be_v this_o 5.45_o john_n 5.45_o i_o earnest_o desire_v your_o salvation_n do_v not_o use_v my_o authority_n in_o condemninge_v you_o but_o do_v whole_o seek_v to_o save_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v yet_o think_v not_o you_o that_o you_o be_v therefore_o escape_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n bu_n for_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v unpunished_a and_o go_v away_o without_o judgement_n which_o contemn_v and_o reject_v the_o son_n of_o god_n c._n for_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o least_o the_o only_a word_n which_o you_o have_v despise_v shall_v be_v a_o sufficient_a and_o meet_a judge_n and_o receyve_v not_o my_o word_n c._n this_o latter_a part_n be_v a_o exposition_n of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o m._n for_o in_o these_o word_n it_o be_v declare_v ●hat_n it_o be_v to_o object_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o what_o they_o be_v which_o reject_v he_o c._n for_o because_o man_n have_v hypocrisy_n ingraff_v in_o they_o by_o nature_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o easy_a for_o they_o than_o in_o word_n to_o boast_v that_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o receive_v christ_n and_o we_o see_v how_o common_a this_o vain_a boast_n be_v even_o among_o the_o most_o wicked_a wherefore_o we_o must_v remember_v this_o definition_n name_o that_o christ_n be_v reject_v when_o we_o embrace_v not_o the_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospoll_n m._n even_o as_o to_o receive_v christ_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o receyve_v his_o word_n by_o a_o lively_a faith_n c._n the_o papist_n brag_v with_o openne_n mouth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o same_o be_v preach_v there_o be_v nothing_o more_o hatfull_a unto_o they_o these_o kiss_n christ_n as_o judas_n do_v therefore_o let_v we_o learn_v to_o include_v he_o in_o his_o word_n and_o geve_v unto_o he_o that_o worshipe_n of_o obedience_n only_o which_o he_o require_v the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v c._n he_o can_v not_o by_o a_o more_o gloriousse_n title_n extol_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n than_o when_o he_o geve_v the_o power_n of_o judge_v unto_o the_o same_o for_o accord_v to_o these_o word_n the_o last_o judgement_n shall_v be_v nothing_o else_o than_o a_o approvinge_a of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o christ_n shall_v site_n upon_o his_o tribunal_n seat_n but_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o will_v pronounce_v that_o sentence_n out_o of_o his_o word_n which_o he_o now_o preach_v this_o threaten_a aught_o to_o make_v the_o wicked_a much_o afeard_a when_o they_o can_v escape_v the_o judgement_n of_o his_o doctrine_n which_o they_o now_o so_o proud_o contemn_v again_o hereby_o come_v a_o wonderful_a consolation_n to_o the_o godly_a that_o howsoever_o they_o be_v now_o condemn_v of_o the_o world_n they_o be_v notwithstanding_o already_o justefied_a in_o heaven_n because_o whersoever_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v this_o feat_n the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n be_v errect_v to_o save_v we_o bear_v ourselves_o bold_a upon_o this_o authority_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v care_v for_o the_o papist_n with_o their_o preposterous_a judgemente_n because_o our_o faith_n reach_v above_o the_o angel_n bu_n therefore_o let_v we_o well_o remember_v this_o and_o let_v we_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o despise_v not_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o we_o in_o his_o gospel_n 49_o for_o i_o have_v not_o speak_v of_o myself_o but_o the_o father_n which_o send_v i_o he_o give_v i_o commandment_n what_o i_o shall_v say_v and_o what_o i_o shall_v speak_v c._n least_o the_o external_a show_n of_o man_n shall_v diminish_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n christ_n call_v we_o from_o the_o fame_n unto_o his_o father_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o make_v mention_n so_o often_o time_n of_o his_o father_n and_o very_o see_v it_o be_v great_a wickedness_n to_o transfer_v unto_o any_o other_o any_o part_n of_o the_o divine_a glory_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o same_o word_n come_v from_o god_n to_o which_o judgement_n be_v give_v bu_n christ_n therefore_o in_o these_o word_n do_v very_o strong_o maintain_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o prove_v the_o same_o not_o to_o be_v humane_a but_o divine_a undoubted_a and_o authentical_a c._n also_o here_o he_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o he_o and_o his_o father_n not_o according_a to_o the_o divine_a person_n simp_o but_o rather_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n lest_o the_o doctrine_n be_v judge_v to_o be_v of_o man_n shall_v have_v the_o less_o weight_n and_o auctoritye_n moreover_o if_o so_o be_v the_o conscience_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o human_a law_n this_o reason_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o serve_v that_o his_o word_n shall_v be_v a_o judge_n because_o the_o same_o have_v not_o come_v from_o man_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o saint_n james_n there_o be_v one_o law_n gever_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o to_o destroy_v moreover_o hereby_o we_o may_v gather_v what_o wicked_a and_o cruel_a sacrilege_n that_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n dare_v presume_v to_o bind_v man_n conscience_n unto_o his_o imagination_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o arrogate_v more_o unto_o himself_o then_o do_v the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o deny_v that_o he_o speak_v any_o thing_n but_o according_a to_o the_o commandment_n and_o prescript_n of_o his_o father_n a._n the_o which_o he_o do_v not_o only_o here_o affirm_v but_o very_o often_o also_o for_o the_o commendation_n of_o his_o doctrine_n as_o in_o the_o seven_o and_o eyghte_a chapter_n goinge_v before_o 50_o and_o i_o know_v that_o his_o commandment_n be_v life_n everlasting_a whatsoever_o i_o speak_v therefore_o even_o as_o the_o father_n bid_v i_o so_o i_o speak_v c._n again_o he_o commend_v the_o fruit_n of_o his_o doctrine_n to_o the_o end_n all_o man_n may_v the_o more_o willing_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o the_o same_o m._n for_o he_o say_v not_o simple_o and_o his_o commandment_n be_v everlasting_a life_n but_o he_o say_v i_o know_v that_o his_o commandment_n be_v everlasting_a life_n this_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n towards_o mankind_n he_o know_v what_o to_o teach_v and_o wherefore_o he_o be_v send_v namely_o to_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v he_o send_v of_o the_o father_n that_o he_o may_v be_v to_o the_o faithful_a the_o author_n of_o everlasting_a life_n this_o certain_o also_o become_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n who_o ought_v to_o teach_v no_o other_o thing_n then_o that_o which_o they_o have_v receive_v in_o commandment_n the_o which_o if_o they_o do_v they_o also_o may_v say_v we_o speak_v not_o of_o ourselves_o but_o he_o which_o have_v send_v we_o have_v give_v we_o a_o commandment_n what_o we_o shall_v teach_v and_o we_o know_v that_o his_o commandment_n be_v eternal_a life_n a_o excellent_a title_n verylye_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o everlasting_a life_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n or_o preach_v of_o grace_n commit_v by_o the_o father_n to_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o eternal_a life_n which_o he_o promise_v to_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o r._n for_o this_o commandment_n the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o the_o son_n that_o he_o shall_v descend_v into_o this_o world_n and_o save_v all_o those_o that_o beeléeve_v for_o so_o god_n love_v the_o whrlde_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o every_o one_o which_o beléeve_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v life_n everlasting_a m._n the_o law_n also_o be_v command_v to_o moses_n but_o it_o be_v give_v upon_o mount_n sina_n with_o fear_n tremble_a and_o lead_v to_o death_n but_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n give_v to_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n preach_v in_o zion_n and_o spread_v from_o thence_o throughout_o the_o whoale_n world_n be_v peaceable_a and_o sweet_a and_o wrighten_a by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o table_n of_o their_o heart_n which_o believe_v offer_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o everlasting_a life_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v c._n it_o be_v meet_v therefore_o that_o they_o feel_v the_o vengeance_n of_o god_n which_o be_v so_o wicked_o bend_v that_o they_o now_o refuse_v he_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o life_n
will_v return_v to_o you_o again_o r._n for_o i_o will_v not_o so_o go_v away_o that_o i_o will_v be_v quite_o separate_v from_o you_o i_o will_v not_o so_o go_v away_o that_o i_o will_v not_o return_v again_o i_o will_v not_o so_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o my_o father_n that_o i_o will_v retain_v the_o same_o to_o myself_o alone_a but_o for_o your_o cause_n i_o go_v and_o i_o so_o go_v that_o i_o will_v come_v again_o &_o receive_v you_o unto_o i_o c._n moreover_o this_o come_n again_o here_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o though_o christ_n will_v geve_v unto_o his_o disciple_n a_o new_a presence_n of_o himself_o in_o the_o spirit_n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o and_o in_o we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n but_o he_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n in_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v come_v at_o the_o length_n to_o gather_v those_o that_o be_v his_o together_o and_o very_o he_o do_v daily_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o we_o if_o so_o be_v we_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o whoale_n body_n of_o the_o church_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o full_a time_n of_o our_o entrance_n into_o heaven_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v this_o the_o apostle_n do_v notable_o express_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonians_n m._n let_v we_o remember_v therefore_o that_o christ_n be_v come_v again_o into_o this_o world_n the_o world_n believe_v not_o this_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o first_o come_n be_v that_o all_o they_o which_o be_v elect_v unto_o life_n from_o the_o beginning_n may_v be_v call_v unto_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n the_o second_o cause_n of_o his_o come_n shall_v be_v that_o the_o foresay_a elect_a may_v be_v take_v up_o into_o everlasting_a mansion_n this_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n 13_o math._n 13_o and_o this_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n be_v desire_v so_o long_o untyll_o a_o place_n be_v provide_v in_o heaven_n for_o every_o one_o and_o this_o cal_n of_o the_o elect_v shall_v be_v fulfil_v here_o in_o earth_n the_o which_o be_v once_o end_v and_o fulfil_v this_o most_o corrupt_a and_o wicked_a world_n shall_v have_v a_o end_n full_a this_o wicked_a world_n shall_v have_v a_o end_n when_o the_o number_n of_o god_n elect_v be_v full_a a._n read_v the_o twentyth_n six_o verse_n of_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n go_v before_o 4._o and_o whether_o i_o go_v you_o know_v and_o the_o way_n you_o know_v b._n because_o he_o will_v comfort_v his_o disciple_n concern_v his_o departure_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o understand_v this_o of_o that_o way_n by_o which_o his_o disciple_n shall_v follow_v he_o unto_o the_o father_n c._o howbeit_o withal_o christ_n teach_v that_o his_o death_n be_v not_o destruction_n but_o a_o passag_n to_o the_o father_n therefore_o we_o have_v here_o to_o note_n two_o thing_n the_o first_o be_v that_o we_o behold_v christ_n in_o his_o heavenlye_a glory_n and_o bless_a immortality_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n secondlye_o that_o we_o know_v he_o to_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o our_o life_n and_o the_o way_n which_o be_v shut_v up_o against_o we_o be_v now_o open_v unto_o we_o by_o he_o this_o he_o utter_v more_o plain_o in_o another_o place_n say_v 24_o mat._n i6_n 24_o m._n he_o which_o will_v follow_v i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v i_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n that_o by_o he_o and_o after_o he_o we_o may_v come_v to_o heavenly_a thing_n 5._o thomas_n say_v unto_o he_o lord_n we_o know_v not_o whether_o thou_o go_v and_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o we_o to_o know_v the_o way_n bu_n the_o disciple_n be_v much_o gréeve_v mark_v not_o what_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o they_o and_o judge_v to_o groslye_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n understande_v not_o his_o mind_n and_o purpose_n c._n and_o although_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n the_o answer_n of_o thomas_n seem_v to_o disagree_v with_o the_o say_n of_o christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o his_o purpose_n be_v not_o to_o discréedite_v his_o master_n notwithstanding_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v how_o he_o deny_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v affirm_v we_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v oftentimes_o in_o the_o saint_n confuse_a understandinge_n because_o they_o do_v not_o way_n and_o consider_v the_o manner_n and_o reason_n of_o that_o which_o be_v plain_o set_v before_o they_o so_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v prophesy_v by_o the_o prophet_n to_o come_v of_o the_o true_a scence_n of_o faith_n 9_z ephe._n 3_o 9_z the_o which_o notwithstanding_o the_o apostle_n paul_n affirm_v to_o be_v a_o mystery_n hide_v from_o they_o therefore_o when_o the_o apostle_n shall_v believe_v that_o christ_n go_v unto_o the_o father_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o know_v not_o how_o he_o shall_v get_v that_o kingdom_n thomas_n just_o affirm_v that_o they_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o go_v thereupon_o he_o gather_v the_o way_n be_v more_o obscure_a for_o before_o we_o enter_v into_o the_o race_n we_o must_v know_v whether_o it_o tend_v m._n by_o this_o place_n we_o gather_v that_o no_o man_n know_v the_o way_n to_o heavenlye_a thing_n except_o he_o first_o know_v that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o mediator_n be_v go_v thither_o 6._o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o i_o be_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n no_o man_n come_v unto_o the_o father_n but_o by_o i_o r._n this_o be_v the_o principal_a point_n and_o sum_n of_o the_o whole_a gospel_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n c._n christ_n do_v not_o direct_o answer_v unto_o the_o question_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o omit_v nothing_o which_o be_v necearye_a to_o be_v knewne_v the_o curiosity_n of_o thomas_n be_v to_o be_v bridle_v therefore_o christ_n do_v not_o show_v what_o his_o condition_n shall_v be_v with_o the_o father_n but_o stand_v upon_o a_o more_o necessery_n point_n thomas_n will_v wyllinglye_o have_v hear_v what_o christ_n shall_v do_v in_o heaven_n even_o as_o we_o oftentimes_o do_v to_o much_o weary_a ourselves_o with_o such_o subtle_a and_o curious_a point_n but_o we_o ought_v rather_o to_o apply_v our_o mind_n how_o we_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n to_o come_v wherefore_o the_o sum_n of_o this_o sentence_n be_v that_o whosoever_o get_v christ_n she_o will_v want_v nothing_o and_o that_o therefore_o he_o go_v beyond_o all_o perfection_n which_o be_v not_o content_v with_o he_o alone_o and_o he_o speak_v of_o their_o degree_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o beginning_n the_o midst_n and_o the_o end_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o must_v begin_v with_o he_o go_v forewarde_n in_o he_o and_o end_n at_o he_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v for_o high_a wisdom_n than_o that_o which_o lead_v we_o to_o everlasting_a life_n this_o he_o affirm_v shall_v be_v find_v in_o he_o and_o he_o also_o pronounce_v that_o the_o same_o must_v be_v seek_v for_o in_o no_o other_o he_o teach_v moreover_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o way_n by_o which_o only_o we_o must_v come_v thither_o therefore_o lest_o he_o shall_v fail_v we_o in_o any_o part_n he_o reach_v out_o his_o hand_n to_o those_o that_o go_v astray_o and_o do_v humble_a himself_o so_o far_o that_o he_o direct_v suck_v child_n he_o have_v profess_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o captain_n forsake_v not_o his_o servant_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o race_n but_o make_v they_o partaker_n of_o the_o truth_n at_o the_o last_o he_o make_v they_o partaker_n of_o that_o truth_n than_o the_o which_o nothing_o more_o excellent_a can_v be_v devise_v bu_n therefore_o in_o these_o word_n all_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v comprehend_v and_o from_o hence_o the_o river_n of_o life_n do_v spring_n c._o see_v therefore_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o way_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o weak_a and_o ignorant_a shall_v complain_v that_o they_o be_v forsake_v of_o he_o see_v he_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n he_o contain_v in_o himself_o wherewithal_o to_o satisfy_v even_o the_o most_o perfect_a truth_n in_o this_o place_n be_v take_v of_o some_o to_o be_v the_o wholesome_a light_n of_o heavenly_a wisdom_n and_o of_o othersome_a to_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o life_n and_o of_o all_o spiritual_a grace_n which_o be_v compare_v with_o figure_n and_o shadow_n even_o as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v grace_n and_o truth_n come_v by_o christ_n jesus_n but_o more_o right_o it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o perfection_n of_o faith_n 1.7_o john_n 1.7_o even_o as_o the_o way_n be_v
of_o faith_n the_o world_n say_v he_o can_v receive_v the_o spirit_n because_o it_o know_v not_o the_o same_o but_o you_o know_v it_o because_o it_o abide_v with_o you_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n only_o which_o dwell_v in_o we_o offer_v itself_o to_o be_v know_v whereas_o to_o other_o it_o be_v unknown_a and_o incomprehensible_a r._n and_o by_o the_o name_n of_o world_n all_o the_o most_o wise_a holy_a mighty_a and_o rich_a of_o the_o same_o be_v understand_v for_o these_o be_v call_v the_o pillar_n of_o the_o world_n who_o the_o world_n only_a receivith_n and_o have_v in_o admiration_n wherefore_o the_o spirit_n be_v never_o les_fw-fr find_v than_o among_o the_o most_o mighty_a of_o this_o world_n for_o they_o love_v lie_v and_o hypocrisy_n they_o be_v blind_v with_o their_o gift_n they_o can_v therefore_o abide_v the_o spirit_n reprove_v they_o of_o lie_n and_o draw_v they_o from_o their_o gift_n unto_o the_o gever_n m._n by_o this_o place_n we_o be_v also_o teach_v that_o the_o world_n be_v altogether_o wicked_a &_o a_o enemy_n unto_o god_n &_o subject_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o lie_n and_o this_o be_v the_o fountain_n from_o whence_o so_o many_o heresy_n error_n false_a worshippyng_n &_o such_o like_a do_v come_v into_o the_o world_n it_o be_v much_o that_o he_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n can_v be_v receive_v of_o this_o world_n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o sobriety_n here_o the_o world_n be_v the_o welspringe_n of_o here_o can_v be_v receive_v of_o droonkard_n the_o spirit_n of_o humilytie_n of_o proud_a man_n nor_o the_o spirit_n of_o shamefastness_n of_o impudent_a person_n for_o this_o world_n be_v so_o blind_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o lie_v that_o it_o can_v neither_o see_v nor_o understand_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n final_o we_o must_v note_n that_o the_o faithful_a be_v therefore_o call_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o in_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v true_o dwell_v and_o abide_v 18._o i_o will_v not_o leave_v you_o comfortless_o but_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o m._n some_o understande_v this_o of_o the_o return_n of_o christ_n unto_o his_o disciple_n after_o his_o resurrection_n a._n but_o other_o some_o a_o great_a deal_n better_o refer_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bu_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v have_v say_v you_o shall_v think_v when_o i_o be_o go_v from_o you_o in_o my_o bodily_a presence_n that_o you_o be_v orphan_n without_o a_o father_n but_o if_o you_o consider_v the_o matter_n well_o i_o will_v never_o leave_v you_o r._n for_o i_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o consolation_n which_o shall_v help_v you_o with_o fatherly_a affection_n in_o all_o adversity_n so_o beneficial_a shall_v my_o departure_n be_v unto_o you_o so_o great_a profit_n shall_v my_o death_n bring_v unto_o you_o c._n this_o place_n teach_v what_o man_n be_v and_o what_o they_o can_v do_v be_v without_o the_o spirit_n of_o consolation_n they_o be_v orphan_n which_o be_v ready_a to_o suffer_v all_o deceit_n and_o injure_v unméete_a to_o govern_v themselves_o and_o apt_a of_o themselves_o to_o do_v nothing_o the_o only_a remedy_n hereof_o be_v for_o christ_n to_o govern_v we_o by_o his_o spirit_n the_o which_o he_o promise_v he_o will_v do_v first_o of_o all_o therefore_o the_o disciple_n be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o their_o own_o imbecility_n to_o the_o end_n they_o distrust_v themselves_o may_v depend_v upon_o the_o defence_n of_o christ_n alone_o second_o he_o promise_v unto_o they_o a_o remedy_n put_v they_o in_o good_a comfort_n because_o he_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v not_o leave_v they_o 19_o yet_o a_o little_a while_n and_o the_o world_n shall_v see_v i_o no_o more_o but_o you_o shall_v see_v i_o because_o i_o live_v and_o you_o shall_v live_v also_o m._n by_o this_o threaten_a christ_n declare_v that_o the_o unbeleving_fw-mi be_v unworthy_a to_o enjoy_v his_o sight_n any_o more_o c._n &_o withal_o prosecute_v the_o commendation_n of_o his_o special_a grace_n which_o ought_v to_o suffice_v the_o disciple_n to_o ease_v they_o and_o to_o take_v away_o their_o sorrow_n when_o say_v he_o i_o shall_v go_v out_o of_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n i_o will_v nevertheless_o be_v with_o you_o r._n for_o short_o after_o my_o death_n i_o will_v go_v out_o of_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n that_o it_o shall_v see_v i_o no_o more_o but_o i_o will_v be_v always_o present_a with_o you_o bu_n by_o the_o world_n he_o mean_v carnal_a man_n and_o such_o as_o be_v not_o regenerate_v which_o be_v unbeléeving_a and_o live_v in_o the_o world_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o world_n also_o this_o word_n shall_v see_v be_v by_o a_o metaphor_n transfer_v from_o the_o body_n to_o the_o mind_n therefore_o carnal_a man_n and_o unbeléever_n do_v not_o see_v do_v not_o understand_v nor_o believe_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o very_a man_n who_o by_o his_o death_n bring_v to_o life_n and_o redéeme_v all_o mankind_n from_o damnation_n c._n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v enjoy_v the_o secret_a behold_v of_o christ_n we_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o his_o presence_n and_o absence_n according_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o we_o must_v behold_v his_o power_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o thus_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o faithful_a do_v always_o behold_v and_o have_v present_a with_o they_o christ_n in_o spirit_n though_o he_o be_v far_o from_o they_o in_o body_n because_o i_o live_v and_o you_o c._n these_o word_n may_v be_v construe_v two_o way_n either_o that_o this_o sentence_n be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o or_o else_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v red_a several_o as_o that_o therefore_o the_o faithful_a shall_v live_v because_o christ_n love_v but_o the_o former_a scence_n seem_v best_a to_o agree_v out_o of_o the_o which_o we_o may_v gather_v this_o doctrine_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o life_n m._n for_o we_o be_v dead_a and_o our_o life_n be_v hide_v with_o christ_n in_o god_n 3._o colos_n 3_z 3._o in_o the_o beginning_n he_o noat_v the_o cause_n why_o he_o will_v be_v see_v of_o his_o disciple_n and_o not_o of_o the_o world_n because_o christ_n can_v be_v see_v but_o according_a to_o the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o the_o which_o the_o world_n be_v quite_o void_a the_o world_n see_v not_o christ_n and_o no_o marvel_n for_o death_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o blindness_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o begin_v to_o live_v in_o spirit_n it_o have_v eye_n to_o see_v christ_n 20._o that_o day_n shall_v you_o know_v that_o i_o be_o in_o my_o father_n and_o you_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o r._n many_o by_o this_o daye_n of_o the_o which_o christ_n speak_v hear_v understande_v the_o feast_n of_o penticoste_n c._n but_o he_o rather_o understand_v all_o that_o time_n from_o the_o first_o declaration_n of_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n unto_o the_o last_o resurrection_n for_o than_o they_o begin_v to_o know_v but_o it_o be_v a_o sertaine_a sciend_a instruction_n because_o as_o yet_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v not_o so_o effectual_o wrought_v in_o they_o for_o to_o this_o effect_n his_o word_n tend_v that_o it_o can_v be_v know_v by_o a_o certain_a trifle_a speculation_n and_o vain_a curiosity_n what_o the_o sacred_a and_o mystical_a union_n betwixt_o he_o and_o we_o be_v and_o again_o what_o manner_n of_o union_n be_v betwixt_o he_o and_o his_o father_n but_o rather_o that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o know_v he_o when_o he_o pour_v into_o we_o his_o life_n by_o the_o secret_a efficacy_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o that_o be_v the_o experiment_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o which_o we_o speak_v a_o little_a before_o bu_n but_o the_o son_n after_o one_o manner_n be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o after_o another_o manner_n in_o us._n for_o by_o nature_n he_o be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o in_o we_o by_o participation_n by_o grace_n or_o by_o the_o felloweship_n of_o the_o spirit_n concern_v beath_n we_o have_v speak_v before_o in_o the_o sixth_o and_o ten_o chapter_n and_o sainte_n john_n in_o the_o epistle_n say_v hereby_o we_o know_v that_o we_o abide_v in_o he_o 1●_n i._o yoh_n 4_z 1●_n and_o he_o in_o we_o because_o he_o have_v give_v to_o we_o of_o his_o spirit_n c._n therefore_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o he_o because_o we_o be_v graff_v into_o his_o body_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o righteousenesse_n and_o of_o all_o goodness_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o we_o because_o he_o declare_v by_o the_o efficacye_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o he_o be_v the_o cause_n and_o authoure_n
therefore_o although_o he_o seem_v to_o speak_v unto_o deaf_a man_n for_o a_o time_n yet_o notwithstanding_o afterward_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o do_v not_o spend_v his_o wind_n in_o vain_a but_o that_o he_o sow_v the_o seed_n in_o the_o ground_n which_o be_v afterward_o to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n and_o as_o christ_n speak_v here_o of_o his_o word_n and_o of_o the_o fulfillinge_v of_o thing_n even_o so_o his_o death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n do_v grow_v together_o with_o doctrine_n that_o they_o may_v bring_v forth_o faith_n in_o us._n a._n moreover_o he_o speak_v here_o almost_o the_o same_o which_o he_o do_v when_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o treason_n of_o judas_n now_o i_o tell_v you_o before_o it_o be_v come_v that_o when_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v you_o may_v believe_v that_o i_o be_o he_o 13.16_o john_n 13.16_o and_o in_o the_o sixteen_o chapter_n follow_v but_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o speak_v unto_o you_o that_o when_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v you_o may_v remember_v that_o i_o tell_v you_o by_o which_o word_n he_o show_v a_o plain_a argument_n of_o his_o divinitye_n to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o disciple_n faith_n 38_o hereafter_o will_v i_o not_o taulke_v many_o word_n with_o you_o for_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n come_v &_o have_v naught_o in_o i_o bu_n now_o in_o plain_a word_n he_o show_v that_o be_v will_v die_v for_o the_o salvation_n and_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n for_o he_o show_v that_o death_n and_o bond_n wait_v for_o he_o say_v now_o shall_v my_o first_o ministry_n cease_v by_o which_o i_o abase_v myself_o even_o to_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n for_o the_o hour_n of_o my_o passion_n be_v at_o hand_n by_o which_o sai_v he_o mind_v to_o make_v his_o disciple_n more_o attentive_a and_o more_o deep_o to_o print_v his_o doctrine_n in_o their_o mind_n for_o fullness_n often_o time_n bring_v loathsomenesse_n and_o that_o be_v more_o earnest_o desire_v which_o be_v hard_a to_o be_v get_v and_o that_o which_o tarry_v but_o a_o while_o be_v most_o set_v by_o therefore_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o will_v short_o go_v from_o they_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o desierouse_a to_o hear_v his_o doctrine_n and_o although_o christ_n shall_v teach_v we_o all_o our_o life_n time_n without_o cease_v yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o sentence_n may_v be_v apply_v to_o our_o use_n also_o because_o see_v the_o race_n of_o our_o life_n be_v but_o short_a we_o must_v use_v occasion_n a._n lest_o we_o be_v blind_v in_o our_o own_o wickedness_n do_v contemn_v his_o voice_n which_o talk_v with_o we_o at_o this_o day_n for_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n c._n he_o may_v simple_o have_v say_v that_o he_o shall_v die_v and_o that_o now_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o death_n be_v at_o hand_n but_o he_o speak_v by_o circomstance_n to_o confirm_v their_o mind_n least_o they_o be_v terrify_v with_o so_o horrible_a and_o fearful_a a_o kind_n of_o death_n shall_v fall_v away_o for_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o be_v crucefy_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o seek_v life_n among_o the_o dead_a first_o of_o all_o he_o say_v that_o this_o power_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o sathan_n then_o he_o add_v that_o he_o suffer_v the_o same_o not_o be_v cause_n he_o be_v thereunto_o constrain_v but_o that_o he_o may_v obey_v his_o father_n a._n but_o why_o the_o devil_n be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o twelu_v chapter_n go_v before_o c._n and_o by_o the_o name_n of_o world_n be_v comprehend_v all_o mankind_n for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o redeemer_n which_o deliver_v we_o out_o of_o this_o horrible_a servitude_n but_o see_v this_o poonishment_n come_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o first_o man_n even_o as_o daily_o it_o encreass_v more_o and_o more_o through_o new_a sin_n let_v we_o learn_v both_o to_o hate_v ourselves_o and_o our_o sin_n also_o for_o we_o be_v so_o captive_a under_o the_o rule_n of_o satan_n that_o notwithstanding_o this_o servitude_n which_o be_v voluntary_a shall_v not_o excuse_v we_o and_o make_v we_o blameless_a we_o must_v also_o note_n that_fw-mi the_o same_o be_v attribute_v here_o to_o the_o devil_n which_o be_v do_v by_o wicked_a man_n for_o it_o be_v no_o unwonted_a thing_n to_o attribute_v that_o to_o the_o capitaine_fw-fr which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o whole_a army_n of_o the_o capitaine_n satan_n be_v the_o captain_n of_o judas_n and_o of_o the_o murder_a jew_n who_o cause_v they_o to_o commit_v such_o horrible_a wickedness_n c._n therefore_o when_o the_o wicked_a be_v carry_v by_o the_o motion_n of_o satan_n whatsoever_o they_o do_v be_v just_o say_v to_o be_v his_o work_n m._n also_o this_o place_n teach_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o look_v for_o of_o this_o world_n in_o the_o which_o the_o devil_n be_v prince_n seconde_o how_o he_o use_v wicked_a man_n as_o his_o soldier_n to_o persecute_v god_n elect_v and_o have_v naught_o in_o i_o b._n satan_n have_v power_n over_o those_o that_o be_v subject_a to_o sin_n for_o he_o work_v in_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n therefore_o see_v the_o lord_n be_v pure_a from_o all_o sin_n satan_n have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o in_o he_o c._n howbeit_o these_o word_n may_v have_v a_o far_a meaning_n for_o christ_n speak_v not_o here_o of_o his_o pureness_n alone_o but_o also_o of_o his_o divine_a power_n which_o be_v not_o subject_n unto_o death_n for_o it_o be_v mete_v for_o the_o disciple_n to_o know_v that_o he_o be_v not_o obnoxius_fw-la to_o infirmytye_n least_o they_o shall_v think_v to_o base_o of_o his_o power_n but_o in_o this_o general_a sentence_n that_o former_a sentence_n be_v conclude_v that_o in_o subdue_a death_n he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o satan_n wheruppon_o be_v gather_v that_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o turn_n when_o he_o submit_v himself_o to_o death_n bu_n r._n othersome_a also_o note_n here_o that_o satan_n have_v no_o power_n in_o christ_n because_o the_o member_n and_o instrument_n of_o satan_n can_v not_o obtain_v that_o which_o they_o desire_v for_o they_o purpose_v to_o destroy_v christ_n and_o to_o blot_v out_o his_o name_n for_o ever_o but_o he_o when_o he_o hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v even_o in_o death_n shake_v the_o earth_n and_o wrought_v such_o wonder_n as_o beséeme_v the_o son_n of_o god_n straight_o after_o he_o arise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n where_o he_o reign_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n christ_n satan_n have_v no_o power_n in_o christ_n therefore_o the_o power_n of_o sathan_n can_v prevail_v nothing_o against_o the_o lord_n of_o light_n and_o life_n this_o be_v no_o small_a consolation_n to_o the_o faithful_a for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n have_v over_o come_v for_o we_o sin_n death_n and_o sathan_n wherefore_o if_o sathan_n have_v no_o power_n in_o the_o head_n neither_o shall_v he_o have_v any_o power_n in_o the_o member_n for_o the_o victory_n life_n and_o innocencye_n of_o christ_n jesus_n be_v we_o by_o faith_n therefore_o if_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n come_v unto_o thou_o be_v not_o afraid_a consider_v that_o he_o have_v bend_v and_o use_v all_o his_o force_n against_o the_o saviour_n and_o prevail_v not_o but_o be_v overthrow_v himself_o when_o he_o think_v to_o have_v get_v the_o victory_n the_o lord_n jesus_n get_v the_o victory_n for_o thy_o sake_n and_o thou_o shall_v overcome_v in_o he_o r._n but_o if_o satan_n have_v no_o power_n over_o christ_n why_o then_o do_v he_o prevail_v so_o much_o that_o he_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o short_o after_o christ_n die_v and_o that_o the_o most_o shameful_a death_n of_o all_o other_o even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n hear_v now_o the_o cause_n hereof_o in_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n follow_v 31._o but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o i_o love_v the_o father_n and_o as_o the_o father_n give_v i_o a_o commandment_n even_o so_o do_v i_o ▪_o rise_v let_v we_o go_v hence_o but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v b._n that_o be_v to_o say_v therefore_o i_o will_v geve_v place_n to_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n and_o delyver_v myself_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o sinner_n that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o i_o love_v the_o father_n c._n we_o have_v in_o this_o to_o note_n that_o god_n decree_v here_o stand_v in_o the_o high_a place_n lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o christ_n be_v so_o carry_v to_o death_n by_o the_o violence_n of_o satan_n that_o some_o thing_n happen_v to_o he_o beside_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v god_n which_o have_v ordain_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o prepitiatory_a and_o which_o will_v
glorification_n of_o other_o of_o the_o godly_a and_o of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n signifi_v that_o he_o do_v not_o ask_v of_o god_n a_o general_a glorification_n of_o the_o godly_a but_o a_o special_a glorify_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o thy_o son_n may_v glorify_v thou_o he_o mean_v that_o there_o be_v a_o mutual_a glorify_v of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n for_o to_o what_o end_n appear_v christ_n but_o only_o to_o bring_v we_o unto_o the_o father_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o what_o soever_o honour_n be_v bring_v unto_o the_o father_n the_o same_o be_v bring_v unto_o christ_n and_o contraryewyse_o a._n and_o he_o which_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n honour_v not_o the_o father_n which_o send_v he_o whereupon_o in_o another_o place_n he_o join_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n together_o as_o when_o he_o say_v 11.4_o john_n 11.4_o this_o infirmity_n be_v not_o unto_o death_n but_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 5.23_o john_n 5.23_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v thereby_o m._n so_o that_o here_o we_o see_v the_o disposition_n of_o the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n he_o say_v not_o that_o thy_o son_n may_v be_v gloriouse_a in_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o that_o thy_o son_n may_v glorify_v thou_o so_o that_o whereas_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v glorify_v it_o be_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o fathers_n glory_n therefore_o not_o only_o the_o son_n but_o the_o father_n also_o himself_o be_v so_o unknown_a and_o obscure_a in_o this_o world_n and_o that_o not_o amoung_a the_o gentile_n only_o but_o also_o amounge_a the_o jew_n that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v glorify_v but_o by_o his_o son_n c._n final_o we_o must_v always_o remember_v what_o person_n christ_n in_o this_o sustain_v for_o we_o must_v not_o consider_v his_o eternal_a divinitye_n alone_o because_o he_o speak_v as_o he_o be_v god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o according_a to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o mediator_n b._n moreover_o the_o son_n glorify_v the_o father_n when_o he_o manifest_v his_o power_n and_o goodness_n and_o the_o father_n glorifi_v the_o son_n in_o that_o he_o have_v exalt_v he_o set_v he_o on_o his_o right_a hand_n to_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o saviour_n of_o all_o and_o have_v make_v he_o to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o thing_n the_o lord_n plain_o enough_o declare_v when_o he_o say_v as_o follow_v as_o thou_o have_v give_v he_o power_n over_o all_o flesh_n that_o he_o shall_v give_v eternal_a life_n to_o as_o many_o as_o thou_o have_v give_v he_o r._n this_o be_v that_o glory_n with_o the_o which_o the_o father_n glorify_v the_o son_n namely_o that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o author_n of_o everlasting_a life_n to_o all_o man_n which_o believe_v in_o he_o which_o be_v mean_v by_o this_o word_n flesh_n for_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n that_o every_o one_o which_o see_v the_o son_n 46_o john_n 6_o 46_o and_o beléeve_v in_o he_o shall_v have_v eternal_a life_n but_o to_o be_v a_o medtator_n to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o everlasting_a life_n be_v not_o great_a honour_n and_o glory_n c._n the_o power_n over_o all_o flesh_n signify_v the_o rule_n and_o dominion_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o christ_n when_o the_o father_n appoint_v he_o to_o be_v the_o king_n and_o head_n but_o we_o must_v note_n the_o end_n namely_o that_o he_o may_v gyve_v eternal_a life_n to_o all_o those_o that_o believe_v christ_n therefore_o take_v upon_o he_o rule_v and_o power_n not_o so_o much_o for_o himself_o as_o for_o our_o salvation_n so_o that_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o we_o willing_o submit_v ourselves_o unto_o christ_n not_o only_o to_o obey_v god_n but_o also_o because_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o amiable_a than_o that_o subjection_n sing_v it_o be_v unto_o we_o the_o cause_n of_o everlasting_a life_n m._n but_o as_o touch_v this_o present_a place_n we_o see_v that_o eternal_a life_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o the_o reward_n of_o our_o merit_n secondlye_o that_o this_o gift_n be_v stay_v upon_o the_o power_n of_o god_n give_v to_o the_o son_n three_o god_n life_n eternal_a be_v the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n that_o everlasting_a life_n be_v not_o give_v to_o everye_o one_o but_o only_o to_o the_o elect_v who_o the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o the_o son_n c_o for_n christ_n say_v not_o that_o he_o have_v rule_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o give_v life_n unto_o all_o man_n ▪_o without_o exception_n but_o he_o restrain_v this_o grace_n to_o those_o only_o which_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o but_o how_o be_v they_o give_v for_o the_o father_n have_v also_o make_v the_o reprobate_a subject_n unto_o he_o answer_v only_o the_o elect_v be_v of_o the_o peculiar_a flock_n of_o christ_n the_o custody_n and_o charge_n whereof_o he_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o shepherd_n therefore_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v extend_v to_o all_o man_n but_o it_o bring_v save_v health_n to_o the_o elect_a only_o who_o glad_o and_o willying_o follow_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o shepherd_n for_o other_o he_o constrain_v violent_o to_o obey_v he_o untyll_o at_o the_o last_o he_o break_v they_o in_o piece_n with_o a_o iron_n maul_v a._n therefore_o this_o place_n agree_v very_o well_o with_o that_o which_o we_o read_v before_o where_o it_o be_v say_v whatsoever_o the_o father_n gyve_v i_o shall_v come_v unto_o i_o also_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o send_v i_o 6.37_o joh._n 6.37_o that_o of_o all_o which_o he_o have_v give_v i_o i_o shall_v not_o loose_v one_o but_o raise_v it_o up_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n this_o be_v life_n eternal_a that_o they_o may_v know_v thou_o the_o true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v c._n now_o he_o define_v the_o way_n how_o to_o geve_v life_n name_o when_o he_o illumine_v and_o bring_v the_o elect_v into_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n for_o he_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o the_o fruition_n of_o life_n which_o we_o hope_v for_o but_o only_o show_v how_o man_n shall_v come_v unto_o life_n and_o to_o the_o end_n this_o sentence_n may_v be_v well_o understand_v we_o must_v first_o of_o all_o note_n that_o we_o be_v all_o in_o death_n untyll_o such_o time_n as_o god_n do_v shine_v who_o alone_a be_v lyff_fw-mi and_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v shine_v because_o we_o possess_v he_o by_o faith_n we_o enter_v therewithal_o into_o the_o possession_n of_o life_n hereupon_o it_o come_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o be_v right_o say_v to_o bring_v save_v health_n m._n but_o this_o knowledge_n be_v not_o get_v by_o our_o own_o industrye_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n therefore_o the_o son_n pray_v the_o father_n to_o gloryfye_v he_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o also_o may_v glorifye_v he_o again_o and_o that_o so_o the_o elect_a have_v receyve_v the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o boath_n may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o eternal_a life_n no_o man_n therefore_o can_v know_v god_n but_o by_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n r._n for_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n which_o have_v reveal_v he_o for_o he_o be_v the_o brightness_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n 1.18_o john_n 1.18_o and_o the_o light_n be_v know_v in_o brightness_n and_o glory_n 1.3_o hebr._n 1.3_o c._n wherefore_o god_n be_v not_o know_v but_o in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v his_o lively_a and_o express_a image_n 15._o colos_n 1_z 15._o in_o that_o therefore_o that_o the_o father_n be_v set_v in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o be_v not_o refer_v to_o the_o order_n of_o faith_n as_o though_o our_o mind_n know_v god_n shall_v afterward_o descend_v unto_o christ_n but_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n be_v that_o god_n be_v know_v by_o a_o mediator_n set_v between_o he_o and_o us._n m._n and_o to_o know_v god_n the_o father_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o he_o have_v send_v be_v not_o simp_o to_o know_v that_o god_n be_v god_n and_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v boath_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o be_v to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o cross_n &_o of_o the_o receyve_v dispensation_n &_o to_o redeem_v mankind_n from_o sin_n and_o death_n originallye_o come_v from_o adam_n eternal_a the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v life_n eternal_a as_o that_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n christ_n and_o that_o he_o send_v he_o for_o man_n salvation_n into_o the_o world_n by_o who_o blood_n salvation_n belong_v to_o all_o man_n as_o well_o to_o the_o jew_n
as_o the_o gentile_n which_o believe_v in_o he_o without_o who_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n 12._o act_n 4_z 12._o c._n here_o he_o add_v two_o epithet_n or_o title_n as_o the_o true_a and_o only_o because_o first_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o faith_n do_v discern_v god_n from_o the_o vain_a imagination_n of_o man_n and_o embrace_v he_o with_o firm_a assurance_n shall_v never_o fail_v or_o swerve_v secondlye_o that_o man_n may_v judge_v nothing_o to_o be_v lame_a or_o unperfect_a in_o god_n and_o he_o may_v content_v themselves_o with_o he_o alone_a this_o therefore_o be_v the_o meaning_n that_o they_o may_v acknowledge_v thou_o for_o the_o true_a god_n but_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o seem_v to_o deprive_v himself_o of_o the_o right_a and_o name_n of_o the_o devinitye_n if_o any_o man_n reply_n and_o say_v objection_n that_o the_o name_n of_o god_n belong_v as_o well_o unto_o christ_n as_o to_o the_o father_n than_o the_o same_o question_n shall_v be_v move_v concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o if_o so_o be_v the_o father_n only_o and_o the_o son_n be_v one_o god_n than_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v put_v out_o of_o his_o degree_n the_o which_o be_v no_o less_o absurd_a the_o answer_n hereunto_o be_v easelye_o make_v answer_v answer_v if_o a_o man_n mark_n and_o consider_v well_o the_o manner_n of_o speech_n which_o christ_n use_v in_o dyvers_a place_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o saint_n john_n of_o the_o which_o the_o reader_n have_v be_v so_o often_o admonish_v already_o that_o they_o can_v forget_v it_o christ_n appear_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n placeth_z the_o power_n essence_n and_o majesty_n of_o god_n under_o the_o person_n of_o his_o father_n therefore_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a god_n the_o father_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o god_n which_o promise_v unto_o the_o world_n long_o a_o go_v a_o redeemer_n be_v one_o but_o in_o christ_n we_o shall_v find_v boath_n the_o unitye_n and_o veritye_n of_o the_o dietye_n because_o christ_n be_v therefore_o abase_v that_o he_o may_v exalt_v us._n when_o we_o be_v come_v thus_o far_o than_o his_o divine_a majesty_n show_v itself_o then_o be_v he_o whole_o know_v in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n whole_o in_o he_o in_o fine_a he_o which_o seperate_v christ_n from_o the_o divinitye_n of_o the_o father_n as_o do_v the_o jew_n turk_n and_o arrian_n he_o as_o yet_o know_v not_o which_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n but_o do_v rather_o devise_v unto_o himself_o a_o strange_a god_n c._n therefore_o we_o be_v command_v to_o know_v god_n and_o christ_n who_o he_o have_v send_v by_o who_o as_o by_o his_o stretch_a out_o hand_n he_o draw_v we_o unto_o he_o r._n also_o this_o place_n very_o well_o agree_v with_o that_o where_o it_o be_v say_v i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o ●5_n joh._n two_o ●5_n though_o he_o be_v dead_a yet_o shall_v he_o live_v and_o whosoever_o lyve_v and_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v not_o dye_v for_o ever_o for_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n wherefore_o faith_n be_v eternal_a life_n because_o it_o possess_v christ_n which_o be_v righteousness_n salvation_n and_o life_n m._n for_o this_o be_v the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n 5.20_o john_n 5.20_o c._n but_o whereas_o it_o seem_v unto_o some_o unjust_a that_o man_n shall_v perish_v for_o the_o ignorance_n of_o god_n only_o it_o come_v hereof_o 36.9_o psal_n 36.9_o because_o they_o do_v not_o way_n and_o consider_v that_o the_o well_o of_o life_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n only_o and_o that_o all_o they_o which_o have_v forsake_v he_o be_v deprive_v of_o life_n 4.18_o ephe._n 4.18_o now_o see_v man_n come_v not_o unto_o god_n but_o by_o faith_n infidelitye_n must_v of_o necessity_n keep_v we_o in_o death_n if_o any_o man_n object_n and_o say_v 6_z heb_fw-mi 11_z 6_z that_o such_o as_o be_v just_a otherwise_o and_o innocent_n shall_v have_v injury_n if_o they_o be_v demand_v which_o want_v knowledge_n we_o may_v readilye_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o right_a and_o sincere_a in_o man_n so_o long_o as_o they_o abide_v in_o their_o corrupt_a nature_n 2i_fw-fr gen_n 8_o 2i_fw-fr for_o the_o thought_n of_o man_n heart_n be_v evell_a even_o from_o his_o childhood_n i0_n colloss_n 3_o i0_n but_o we_o be_v renew_v as_o paul_n testify_v after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n through_o knowledge_n 4._o i_o have_v glorify_v thou_o on_o the_o earth_n i_o have_v finish_v the_o work_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o to_o do_v m._n now_o he_o speak_v of_o that_o by_o which_o he_o advance_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n name_n boath_n by_o doctrine_n and_o by_o sign_n all_o the_o race_n of_o his_o dispensation_n ascribinge_v unto_o he_o continual_o all_o thing_n both_o himself_o and_o his_o doctrine_n and_o also_o the_o power_n of_o his_o miracle_n c._n yea_o in_o these_o word_n he_o comprehend_v all_o the_o part_n of_o his_o ministry_n mean_v that_o he_o have_v finish_v all_o the_o whoale_n course_n of_o his_o call_n for_o than_o be_v the_o due_a and_o full_a time_n when_o he_o shall_v be_v receyve_v up_o into_o heavenlye_a glory_n for_o although_o the_o special_a part_n be_v yet_o behind_o namely_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o death_n by_o which_o he_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n be_v now_o at_o hand_n he_o speak_v even_o as_o if_o he_o have_v already_o suffer_v the_o same_o when_o he_o say_v i_o have_v finish_v the_o work_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o to_o he_o teach_v that_o the_o obedience_n by_o which_o god_n be_v gloryfy_v be_v not_o exercise_v in_o those_o work_n which_o we_o in_o our_o own_o like_n choose_v to_o be_v good_a but_o in_o those_o work_n which_o god_n commit_v to_o everye_o one_o to_o finish_v here_o let_v the_o bishop_n and_o other_o pastor_n take_v heed_n how_o they_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n whether_o they_o also_o can_v say_v we_o have_v gloryfy_v thou_o o_o lord_n upon_o earth_n we_o have_v finish_v the_o work_n which_o thou_o give_v we_o to_o do_v c._n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o christ_n word_n that_o he_o be_v set_v of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o possession_n of_o his_o kingdom_n because_o he_o have_v end_v his_o race_n there_o want_v nothing_o more_o for_o he_o to_o do_v but_o only_o to_o bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v do_v in_o the_o earth_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o his_o father_n according_a to_o this_o say_n of_o paul_n he_o make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n take_v on_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n he_o humble_v himself_o and_o become_v obedient_a to_o the_o death_n even_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n 2.8_o phil_n 2.8_o wherefore_o god_n have_v exalt_v he_o and_o give_v he_o a_o name_n which_o be_v above_o everye_o name_n 5._o and_o now_o glorify_v thou_o i_o o_o father_n with_o thy_o own_o self_n with_o the_o glory_n which_o i_o have_v with_o thou_o or_o ever_o the_o world_n be_v c._n he_o now_o wish_v to_o be_v glorify_v with_o the_o father_n not_o that_o the_o father_n shall_v glorify_v he_o within_o without_o witness_n but_o to_o the_o end_n he_o be_v gloriouse_a receyve_v into_o heaven_n may_v there_o declare_v his_o might_n and_o power_n that_o every_o knee_n boath_n in_o heaven_n in_o earth_n and_o under_o the_o earth_n may_v bow_v i0_n rom_n 6_o i0_n therefore_o these_o word_n with_o thy_o own_o self_n be_v compare_v with_o terrestrial_a and_o transitorye_n glory_n even_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v once_o dead_a unto_o sin_n but_o now_o alyve_a unto_o god_n express_v the_o bless_a immortalytye_n afterward_o he_o declare_v that_o he_o desire_v no_o borrow_a or_o transitorye_n glory_n but_o only_o that_o he_o may_v appear_v to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o in_o the_o flesh_n as_o he_o be_v before_o the_o world_n be_v make_v or_o to_o speak_v more_o plainelye_o that_o the_o divine_a majesty_n which_o he_o always_o have_v might_n now_o shine_v in_o the_o personne_fw-fr of_o the_o mediator_n and_o in_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n which_o he_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o a._n this_o place_n serve_v great_o to_o the_o confutation_n of_o the_o arrian_n for_o although_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o glorification_n of_o a_o man_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o same_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n and_o god_n coescentiall_a with_o the_o father_n and_o coequal_a in_o glory_n have_v his_o
belong_v to_o the_o elect_n who_o the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o the_o son_n the_o other_o be_v common_a to_o all_o that_o have_v ear_n to_o hear_v a._n my_o sheep_n say_v he_o hear_v my_o voice_n r._n for_o the_o elect_v hear_v and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n the_o other_o be_v obstinate_a therefore_o so_o many_o as_o be_v ordain_v to_o everlasting_a life_n believe_v c._n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o third_o degree_n the_o first_o be_v free_a election_n the_o second_o be_v that_o donation_n by_o which_o we_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o custody_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v receyve_v of_o christ_n be_v gather_v through_o faith_n into_o the_o sheepefoulde_n the_o word_n of_o god_n vanish_v away_o from_o the_o reprobate_n but_o it_o take_v deep_a root_n in_o the_o elect_a whereby_o they_o be_v say_v to_o observe_v and_o keep_v a._n wherefore_o christ_n say_v not_o in_o vain_a unto_o the_o jew_n you_o seek_v to_o kill_v i_o because_o my_o word_n abide_v in_o you_o and_o in_o the_o parrable_a of_o the_o seed_n that_o they_o have_v no_o root_n which_o believe_v but_o for_o a_o time_n 8.13_o luke_n 8.13_o and_o in_o time_n of_o temptation_n go_v away_o 7_z now_o theye_n have_v knowene_v that_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o thou_o haste_v give_v i_o be_v of_o thou_o c._n here_o be_v express_v that_o which_o be_v principal_a in_o faith_n when_o man_n so_o believe_v in_o christ_n ▪_o that_o faith_n stay_v not_o itself_o upon_o the_o sight_n of_o flesh_n but_o conceive_v his_o divine_a power_n for_o when_o he_o say_v now_o they_o have_v know_v that_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o he_o mean_v the_o faithful_a that_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v they_o feel_v and_o know_v the_o son_n to_o be_v celestial_a and_o divine_a and_o very_o except_o we_o know_v he_o in_o christ_n we_o must_v needs_o continual_o waver_v and_o be_v unstayed_a r._n therefore_o because_o the_o elect_n do_v believe_v the_o gospel_n therefore_o they_o know_v that_o it_o be_v no_o human_a invention_n but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n come_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o cross_n to_o they_o which_o perish_v be_v foolishness_n 1.18_o rom._n 1.16_o 1._o cor._n 1.18_o thou_o see_v est_fw-la also_o this_o place_n that_o knowledge_n follow_v faith_n and_o go_v not_o before_o the_o same_o as_o we_o see_v also_o before_o in_o the_o three_o score_n and_o nine_o verse_n of_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n 8_z for_o i_o have_v give_v unto_o they_o the_o word_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o and_o they_o have_v receyve_v they_o and_o have_v know_v sure_o that_o i_o come_v out_o from_o thou_o and_o they_o have_v believe_v that_o thou_o dyddest_n send_v i_o r._n now_o he_o declare_v what_o that_o be_v which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v unto_o he_o name_o the_o gospel_n the_o which_o be_v commit_v by_o the_o father_n to_o the_o son_n that_o he_o may_v preach_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o world_n whosoever_o therefore_o receyve_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n he_o shall_v truelye_o know_v chryst_n who_o be_v know_v god_n be_v also_o know_v and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n by_o the_o holy_a gospel_n be_v life_n everlasting_a c._n therefore_o jest_n any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v of_o man_n or_o spring_v from_o the_o earth_n he_o pronounce_v in_o these_o word_n that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o same_o and_o he_o speak_v after_o his_o manner_n in_o the_o personne_n of_o the_o mediatoure_n when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v teach_v that_o only_a which_o he_o have_v receyve_v of_o the_o father_n for_o because_o this_o condition_n in_o the_o flesh_n be_v as_o yet_o base_a and_o because_o under_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n his_o devyne_a majesty_n lie_v hide_v he_o assygn_v god_n under_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n nevertheless_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o which_o saint_a john_n in_o the_o beginning_a how_o that_o chryste_n in_o that_o he_o be_v the_o eternal_a word_n of_o god_n be_v always_o one_o god_n with_o the_o father_n therefore_o the_o mean_a be_v that_o chryste_n be_v a_o faithful_a wytnesse_n of_o god_n unto_o the_o disciple_n that_o their_o faith_n may_v be_v found_v upon_o none_o other_o than_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n sing_v the_o father_n himself_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o son_n m._n here_o therefore_o we_o see_v that_o christ_n delyver_v nothing_o to_o his_o dysciple_n ▪_o but_o that_o which_o he_o have_v receyve_v from_o the_o father_n so_o much_o do_v althynge_n depend_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o the_o saviour_n himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n will_v preach_v nothing_o else_o unto_o mortal_a man_n than_o the_o word_n of_o his_o father_n give_v unto_o he_o to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v preach_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o world_n let_v then_o the_o teacher_n of_o human_a tradition_n be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o great_a presumption_n in_o tie_v the_o conscience_n of_o man_n to_o human_a tradition_n and_o imagination_n when_o there_o can_v come_v no_o peace_n of_o conscience_n but_o from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n delyver_v to_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o they_o have_v know_v sure_o that_o i_o come_v out_o that_o which_o he_o have_v touch_v before_o he_o now_o repeat_v in_o other_o word_n for_o christ_n to_o come_v out_o from_o the_o father_n and_o to_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n be_v even_o as_o much_o as_o that_o which_o go_v before_o where_o christ_n say_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v be_v of_o the_o father_n m_o he_o may_v have_v make_v mention_n of_o sign_n which_o testify_v also_o that_o he_o come_v out_o from_o god_n but_o this_o be_v the_o note_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n to_o believe_v his_o word_n c._n the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o faith_n ought_v right_o to_o behold_v christ_n but_o so_o that_o it_o deem_v and_o judge_v no_o earthly_a or_o contemptible_a thing_n to_o be_v in_o he_o and_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v lift_v up_o to_o his_o divine_a power_n that_o it_o may_v certain_o be_v persuade_v that_o god_n and_o whatsoever_o belong_v unto_o god_n be_v perfytelye_o in_o he_o b._n behold_v here_o therefore_o the_o order_n of_o salvation_n first_o of_o all_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v to_o the_o elect_a than_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o to_o believe_v thirdelye_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o it_o god_n be_v know_v hereof_o by_o and_o by_o spring_n a_o trust_n in_o he_o and_o the_o love_n of_o he_o from_o whence_o consequentlye_o grow_v the_o love_n and_o desire_v of_o piety_n and_o holiness_n and_o also_o the_o duty_n which_o we_o owe_v unto_o our_o brethren_n c._n also_o we_o may_v note_n that_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o sentence_n christ_n use_v this_o word_n know_v and_o in_o the_o latter_a part_n this_o word_n believe_v for_o there_o by_o he_o teach_v we_o that_o we_o can_v know_v god_n true_o without_o faith_n in_o the_o which_o there_o be_v such_o assurance_n and_o sertayntie_a that_o it_o be_v right_o call_v knowledge_n a._n how_o christ_n go_v out_o from_o the_o father_n we_o have_v show_v before_o 9_o i_o pray_v for_o they_o i_o pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n but_o for_o they_o which_o thou_o haste_v give_v i_o for_o they_o be_v thy_o r._n before_o christ_n pray_v for_o himself_o to_o be_v gloryfy_v now_o he_o pray_v for_o his_o apostle_n and_o this_o prayer_n be_v a_o brazen_a wall_n for_o the_o disciple_n whereby_o they_o may_v stand_v steadfast_a in_o all_o adversity_n and_o whereby_o they_o may_v overcome_v sin_n death_n and_o satan_n c._n therefore_o after_o christ_n have_v show_v that_o he_o can_v bring_v his_o disciple_n into_o his_o father_n favour_n now_o he_o make_v a_o prayer_n for_o the_o same_o in_o the_o which_o he_o show_v that_o he_o desyer_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v agreeable_a unto_o his_o father_n will_n because_o be_v commend_v those_o only_a to_o his_o father_n who_o he_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n love_v m._n christ_n in_o pray_v put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o elect_v and_o the_o reprobate_n and_o pray_v 〈◊〉_d only_o for_o the_o elect_v and_o not_o for_o the_o world_n but_o also_o expreslye_o prenounce_v that_o he_o pray_v for_o they_o and_o not_o for_o the_o world_n he_o call_v his_o those_o which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v he_o and_o he_o call_v the_o unbeliever_n the_o reprobate_a and_o those_o who_o the_o father_n have_v not_o give_v unto_o he_o the_o world_n c._n so_o that_o he_o plain_o affirm_v that_o he_o pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n because_o he_o care_v for_o his_o own_o flock_n only_o which_o
gospel_n not_o to_o live_v at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n but_o that_o their_o light_n may_v shine_v before_o man_n not_o to_o be_v prince_n of_o this_o world_n but_o to_o bear_v the_o cross_n with_o christ_n who_o come_v not_o to_o be_v minister_v unto_o 20.28_o mat._n 20.28_o but_o to_o minister_v himself_o and_o to_o give_v his_o life_n a_o redemption_n for_o many_o m._n wherefore_o let_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n mark_v well_o and_o see_v how_o they_o defend_v their_o lordship_n which_o they_o have_v in_o the_o church_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o christ_n 19_o and_o for_o their_o sake_n sanctify_v i_o myself_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v sanctify_v through_o the_o truth_n r._n to_o sanctify_v be_v to_o ceparate_v to_o divine_a use_n c._n therefore_o in_o these_o word_n he_o do_v more_o plain_o explicate_v from_o whence_o that_o sanctification_n do_v come_v which_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n namely_o because_o he_o have_v consecrate_v himself_o to_o the_o father_n that_o his_o holiness_n might_n appertain_v unto_o us._n for_o as_o the_o blessing_n be_v extend_v from_o the_o first_o fruit_n to_o the_o whole_a increase_v even_o so_o the_o spirit_n ●f_n god_n do_v sprinkle_v we_o with_o the_o holiness_n of_o christ_n and_o make_v we_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o and_o that_o not_o only_o by_o imputation_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v unto_o we_o righteousness_n but_o he_o be_v also_o say_v to_o be_v make_v unto_o we_o sanctificaon_n 1.30_o .1_o cor._n 1.30_o because_o after_o a_o sort_n he_o offer_v we_o to_o the_o father_n that_o by_o his_o spirit_n we_o may_v be_v renew_a into_o true_a holiness_n and_o although_o this_o sanctification_n pertain_v to_o the_o whole_a life_n of_o christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v special_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o death_n because_o than_o he_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o true_a priest_n which_o consecrate_v the_o temple_n the_o altar_n all_o the_o vessel_n 29.1_o exod._n 29.1_o and_o the_o people_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n a._n even_o as_o before_o time_n in_o the_o law_n it_o be_v shadow_v r._n christ_n therefore_o sanctifi_v himself_o that_o be_v he_o be_v make_v the_o instrument_n of_o god_n the_o father_n by_o which_o he_o be_v glorify_v he_o offer_v and_o sacrifice_v himself_o that_o we_o also_o may_v be_v make_v the_o instrument_n and_o true_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o divine_a glory_n sanctification_n sanctification_n m._n for_o christ_n have_v not_o so_o sanctify_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v abide_v profane_a and_o far_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o sanctification_n but_o although_o we_o be_v save_v by_o his_o only_a holiness_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o be_v sanctify_v also_o by_o the_o participation_n of_o his_o spirit_n they_z which_o be_v void_a of_o the_o same_o promise_v unto_o themselves_o in_o vain_a the_o fellowship_n of_o christ_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n say_v 6.4_o rom._n 6.4_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o by_o baptism_n into_o his_o death_n that_o likewise_n as_o christ_n be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n even_o so_o we_o also_o shall_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v 12.1_o roma_fw-it 12.1_o offer_v up_o your_o body_n a_o quick_a sacrifice_n holy_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n which_o be_v your_o reasonable_a service_n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o sense_n &_o meaning_n i_o sanctify_v myself_o that_o be_v i_o die_v for_o they_o that_o they_o by_o my_o death_n may_v be_v fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n and_o may_v be_v make_v the_o holy_a vessel_n of_o god_n by_o the_o reveal_v spirit_n of_o the_o gospel_n m._n this_o the_o apostle_n comprehend_v in_o these_o word_n 10.10_o hebr._n 10.10_o in_o the_o which_o will_v we_o be_v make_v holy_a even_o by_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n once_o for_o all_o in_o the_o truth_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o truth_n even_o as_o christ_n say_v before_o therefore_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o faithful_a clean_o acts._n 15.9_o faith_n make_v all_o thing_n clean_o consist_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n upon_o the_o which_o faith_n be_v ground_v by_o which_o god_n purify_v the_o heart_n without_o this_o all_o thing_n be_v profane_a and_o unclean_a 20._o nevertheless_o i_o pray_v not_o for_o they_o alone_o but_o for_o they_o also_o which_o shall_v believe_v on_o i_o through_o their_o preach_n r._n three_o christ_n pray_v for_o all_o the_o faithful_a which_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n this_o very_o bring_v great_a consolation_n for_o if_o so_o be_v through_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o believe_v in_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v doubt_v but_o that_o with_o the_o apostle_n we_o be_v under_o god_n protection_n so_o that_o none_o of_o we_o can_v perish_v this_o prayer_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o quiet_a haven_n into_o the_o which_o whosoever_o enter_v he_o be_v safe_a from_o all_o peril_n of_o shipwreck_n for_o his_o word_n be_v of_o as_o great_a force_n as_o if_o he_o have_v solemn_o swear_v that_o he_o be_v careful_a for_o our_o salvation_n r._n and_o first_o of_o all_o this_o place_n confirm_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n against_o those_o which_o very_o contemptuous_o extinuate_a and_o dispraise_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o apostle_n 20.9_o prou._n 20.9_o for_o that_o they_o be_v man_n also_o subject_a unto_o error_n and_o it_o be_v true_a that_o they_o be_v man_n in_o life_n and_o in_o work_n for_o who_o can_v say_v my_o heart_n be_v clean_a but_o they_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n not_o by_o human_a but_o by_o the_o divine_a ministry_n whereupon_o christ_n also_o pray_v for_o those_o which_o shall_v believe_v through_o their_o preach_n furthermore_o let_v our_o conscience_n be_v confirm_v against_o the_o world_n and_o against_o all_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o world_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o christ_n pray_v the_o father_n hear_v and_o the_o father_n hear_v what_o remain_v but_o his_o grace_n and_o ready_a affection_n toward_o we_o c._n let_v this_o also_o suffice_v we_o which_o know_v that_o our_o faith_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o gospel_n preach_v by_o the_o apoples_n though_o the_o world_n condemn_v we_o a_o thousand_o time_n namely_o that_o christ_n acknowledge_v we_o for_o his_o special_a charge_n and_o commend_v we_o to_o his_o father_n 11.41_o joh._n 11.41_o of_o who_o he_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o be_v hear_v c._n when_o he_o add_v through_o their_o preach_n he_o very_o well_o express_v the_o forre_n and_o nature_n of_o faith_n m._n even_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n also_o 17_o rom._n 10_o 17_o when_o he_o say_v that_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o gospel_n which_o they_o be_v command_v to_o preach_v in_o the_o world_n 16.15_o mar._n 16.15_o c._n woe_n then_o unto_o the_o papist_n who_o faith_n be_v so_o far_o from_o this_o rule_n that_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a most_o blasphemous_o to_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v like_a unto_o a_o shipman_n hose_n and_o to_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v their_o direction_n and_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o let_v we_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o same_o faith_n only_o be_v approve_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o judge_n alone_o which_o be_v conceyve_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o there_o shall_v no_o certain_a testimony_n any_o where_o else_o be_v find_v than_o in_o their_o write_n we_o must_v also_o note_v what_o faith_n the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v bring_v forth_o this_o christ_n declare_v when_o he_o say_v which_o believe_v in_o i_o let_v now_o the_o jew_n turk_n and_o romishe_a rabble_n glory_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n what_o every_o one_o believe_v and_o in_o who_o he_o believe_v every_o doctrine_n have_v his_o faith_n but_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n beget_v only_o the_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o this_o faith_n alone_o be_v partaker_n of_o this_o prayer_n of_o christ_n &_o of_o the_o promise_n concern_v everlasting_a life_n 21._o that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n art_n in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o and_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v one_o in_o we_o that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o r._n that_o which_o christ_n pray_v for_o his_o apostle_n he_o now_o also_o pray_v for_o all_o the_o faithful_a that_o they_o may_v be_v of_o one_o faith_n
we_o must_v be_v the_o true_a member_n of_o his_o body_n b._n therefore_o when_o we_o be_v absolutelye_o godly_a it_o shall_v appear_v that_o we_o be_v dear_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n r._n and_o we_o must_v well_o remember_v the_o prayer_n contain_v in_o this_o chapter_n for_o if_o so_o be_v christ_n pray_v for_o himself_o for_o his_o apostle_n and_o for_o all_o those_o that_o shall_v believe_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o a_o effectual_a prayer_n for_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o the_o son_n which_o be_v obediente_a to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n shall_v be_v repulse_v wherefore_o let_v we_o be_v ful_o persuade_v that_o neither_o death_n neither_o life_n neither_o angel_n neither_o rule_n nether_a power_n nether_a thing_n present_v nor_o thing_n to_o come_v neither_o height_n nor_o depth_n neither_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesu_n our_o lord_n ❧_o the_o .18_o chapter_n 1._o when_o jesus_n have_v speak_v these_o word_n he_o go_v forth_o with_o his_o disciple_n over_o the_o brook_n cedron_n where_o be_v a_o garden_n into_o the_o which_o he_o enter_v with_o his_o disciple_n m._n in_o this_o chapter_n the_o evangelist_n begyn_v to_o declare_v the_o history_n of_o the_o lord_n passion_n in_o the_o declaration_n whereof_o he_o omit_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o other_o three_o evangelist_n the_o which_o he_o do_v of_o purpose_n even_o as_o he_o have_v set_v down_o many_o thing_n worthy_a of_o remembrance_n which_o the_o other_o three_o have_v let_v pass_v with_o silence_n r._n therefore_o hitherto_o be_v note_v the_o sermon_n which_o christ_n make_v at_o his_o last_o supper_n by_o which_o christ_n most_o full_o declare_v and_o manifest_v himself_o to_o his_o disciple_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v what_o grace_n and_o goodness_n he_o contain_v in_o himself_o special_o under_o the_o cross_n also_o he_o pray_v that_o all_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o may_v be_v sanctify_v that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o with_o he_o and_o that_o the_o love_n with_o the_o which_o the_o father_n love_v he_o may_v be_v in_o they_o therefore_o his_o sermon_n and_o prayer_n be_v end_v he_o go_v forth_o with_o his_o disciple_n over_o the_o brook_n cedron_n m._n some_o think_v that_o this_o brook_n be_v call_v the_o brook_n of_o ceder_n because_o many_o cedar_n tree_n grow_v about_o the_o same_o c._n but_o it_o be_v very_o like_v notwithstanding_o that_o this_o name_n come_v up_o through_o error_n for_o of_o the_o valley_n or_o brook_v of_o cedron_n there_o be_v mention_v oftentimes_o make_v in_o the_o scripture_n m._n where_o the_o hebrew_n word_n do_v not_o signify_v cedar_n tree_n but_o dimness_n or_o darkness_n r._n concern_v the_o which_o brook_n we_o read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o king_n 23.4_o 2._o kin._n 15.23_o 4._o kin_n 23.4_o c._n this_o place_n therefore_o be_v so_o call_v because_o of_o the_o darkness_n because_o it_o be_v a_o deep_a valley_n and_o much_o shadow_v howbeit_o we_o will_v not_o contend_v much_o about_o this_o special_o we_o have_v to_o consider_v the_o purpose_n of_o the_o evangelist_n in_o name_v this_o place_n for_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o show_v that_o christ_n go_v willing_o to_o death_n he_o come_v into_o that_o place_n which_o he_o know_v be_v well_o know_v unto_o judas_n and_o to_o what_o end_n but_o only_o to_o offer_v himself_o to_o judas_n and_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n for_o he_o come_v not_o unto_o this_o place_n without_o foresight_n of_o that_o which_o follow_v see_v he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o nothing_o which_o be_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v m._n wherefore_o christ_n pass_v over_o the_o brook_n cedron_n enter_v into_o the_o garden_n not_o to_o flee_v from_o his_o persecuter_n but_o that_o he_o may_v go_v to_o that_o agony_n which_o be_v to_o come_v according_a to_o god_n appointment_n if_o he_o go_v over_o the_o brook_n cedron_n because_o he_o will_v flee_v away_o his_o best_a way_n have_v be_v through_o the_o wilderness_n and_o not_o to_o have_v enter_v into_o this_o garden_n c._n he_o go_v not_o therefore_o to_o seek_v a_o place_n to_o hide_v himself_o in_o but_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o garden_n that_o he_o may_v have_v more_o liberty_n to_o pray_v the_o other_o evangelist_n say_v that_o he_o go_v out_o unto_o the_o mount_n of_o olive_n 26.36_o mat_n 26.36_o and_o they_o make_v mention_n of_o a_o certain_a place_n which_o be_v call_v g●thsemane_n the_o which_o have_v no_o discrepance_n see_v that_o the_o history_n of_o david_n also_o say_v 15.23_o 2._o kin_n 15.23_o that_o the_o people_n when_o they_o have_v pass_v over_o the_o brook_n cedron_n go_v toward_o the_o way_n of_o olivet_n 2._o judas_n also_o which_o betray_v he_o know_v the_o place_n for_o jesus_n ofttimes_o resort_v thither_o with_o his_o disciple_n r._n as_o christ_n be_v not_o betray_v but_o of_o a_o apostle_n and_o his_o chief_a disciple_n and_o that_o to_o those_o to_o who_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o who_o office_n and_o function_n be_v a_o shadow_n and_o type_n of_o he_o 7.52_o persecution_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o disciple_n mat._n 23.37_o act._n 7.52_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o scribe_n even_o so_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v almost_o never_o betray_v but_o of_o such_o as_o know_v the_o same_o and_o be_v friend_n in_o show_n and_o very_o seldom_o it_o suffer_v persecution_n of_o stranger_n the_o gentile_n kill_v not_o the_o prophet_n but_o the_o jew_n which_o boast_v of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o phariseis_n cast_v out_o the_o apostles_n antechrist_n be_v not_o such_o a_o one_o as_o deny_v christ_n but_o a_o boster_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o he_o persecute_v the_o gospel_n so_o the_o hypocritical_a monk_n priest_n bishops_z pope_n and_o such_o like_a have_v only_o the_o outward_a name_n of_o christian_n and_o seek_v to_o betray_v and_o to_o destroy_v christ_n 3._o judas_n then_o after_o he_o have_v receive_v a_o band_n of_o man_n and_o officer_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o pharisee_n come_v thither_o with_o lantern_n and_o torch_n and_o weapon_n r._n with_o what_o force_n &_o strength_n do_v judas_n set_v upon_o christ_n or_o by_o what_o power_n do_v the_o soldier_n of_o judas_n persecute_v the_o gospel_n not_o with_o reason_n &_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n except_o peradventure_o the_o same_o be_v wrest_v to_o serve_v their_o turn_n not_o with_o probable_a argument_n but_o with_o the_o corporal_a sword_n with_o weapon_n with_o affliction_n &_o all_o kind_n of_o torment_n if_o this_o be_v to_o overcome_v who_o have_v great_a conquest_n &_o victory_n than_o tyrant_n fight_v with_o cruelty_n and_o if_o this_o be_v to_o play_v the_o champion_n who_o be_v more_o bold_a &_o stout_a than_o théeve_n read_v the_o .26_o of_o mat._n beginning_n at_o the_o .47_o verse_n concern_v the_o other_o two_o verse_n follow_v also_o read_v the_o same_o chapter_n 6._o assoon_o then_o as_o he_o have_v say_v unto_o they_o i_o be_o he_o they_o go_v backward_o and_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n c._n the_o evangelist_n show_v what_o great_a virtue_n and_o power_n the_o lord_n breathe_v with_o one_o voice_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o wicked_a have_v power_n over_o he_o no_o further_o than_o he_o give_v they_o leave_v he_o gentle_o answer_v that_o he_o be_v the_o very_a same_o who_o they_o seek_v for_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o cast_v they_o prostrate_a upon_o the_o earth_n even_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v with_o the_o violent_a puff_n or_o blast_n of_o a_o whirl_n wound_n or_o with_o the_o flash_a stroke_n of_o lightning_n therefore_o he_o want_v no_o power_n to_o restrain_v their_o hand_n if_o it_o have_v so_o please_v he_o but_o he_o will_v obey_v his_o father_n by_o who_o decree_n he_o know_v he_o be_v call_v and_o appoint_v to_o death_n aug._n for_o where_o be_v now_o this_o ambushment_n of_o soldier_n where_o be_v now_o their_o terror_n and_o fortification_n of_o weapon_n one_o voice_n strike_v repulse_v and_o prostrate_v without_o force_n of_o weapon_n the_o outrageous_a hateful_a multitude_n and_o terrible_a with_o weapon_n for_o god_n lie_v hide_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o sempiternal_a day_n be_v so_o shadow_v and_o cover_v with_o human_a member_n that_o darkness_n seek_v with_o lantern_n and_o fyrebrande_n to_o kill_v the_o same_o what_o will_v he_o do_v which_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v which_o do_v this_o that_o he_o may_v be_v judge_v but_o this_o purpose_n be_v to_o put_v in_o proof_n that_o efficacy_n which_o the_o prophet_n esay_n attribute_v to_o his_o word_n amongst_o other_o the_o mighty_a
call_v himself_o a_o disciple_n not_o a_o doctor_n who_o notwitstand_v far_o excel_v all_o the_o doctor_n and_o teacher_n in_o the_o world_n let_v then_o those_o greedy_a hunter_n after_o vain_a glory_n blush_v and_o be_v ashamed_a who_o be_v content_v with_o no_o tytel_n be_v they_o never_o so_o honourabie_n and_o large_a john_n the_o baptiste_n call_v himself_o a_o voice_n cry_v in_o the_o wilderness_n peter_n and_o paul_n which_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n name_n themselves_o the_o servant_n and_o minister_n of_o jesu_n christ_n but_o john_n also_o call_v himself_o a_o witness_n because_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v you_o shall_v be_v witness_n of_o these_o thing_n a_o witness_n speak_v nothing_o of_o his_o own_o but_o faithful_o do_v declare_v those_o thing_n only_o which_o he_o have_v either_o see_v or_o hear_v wherefore_o that_o which_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o have_v see_v he_o do_v and_o suffer_v simple_o and_o trulye_o evenas_a they_o be_v speak_v and_o do_v he_o have_v utter_v and_o declare_v m._n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o very_a same_o disciple_n who_o he_o have_v so_o often_o say_v be_v special_o belove_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o yet_o have_v he_o not_o once_o in_o all_o his_o book_n set_v to_o his_o name_n lest_o he_o may_v incur_v the_o suspicion_n of_o arrowgancy_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v not_o too_o be_v forbid_v that_o the_o name_n of_o author_n shall_v be_v set_v unto_o their_o book_n the_o which_o may_v stand_v too_o very_o good_a use_n and_o purpose_n so_o that_o vain_a glory_n be_v not_o seek_v and_o we_o know_v that_o his_o testimony_n be_v true_a bu_n now_o saint_n john_n very-serious_o affirm_v that_o he_o have_v faithful_o and_o true_o deliver_v the_o pure_a &_o simple_a truth_n even_o as_o in_o another_o place_n also_o that_o which_o we_o have_v hear_v which_o we_o have_v see_v with_o our_o eye_n which_o we_o have_v look_v upon_o ▪_o and_o our_o hand_n have_v handle_v of_o the_o word_n of_o life_n we_o show_v unto_o you_o for_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v most_o true_a and_o approve_a even_o as_o say_v peter_n we_o have_v not_o follow_v deceitfall_n fable_n when_o we_o open_v unto_o you_o the_o power_n and_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o with_o our_o eye_n we_o see_v his_o majesty_n a._n concern_v the_o rest_n which_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o exposition_n of_o this_o place_n read_v the_o .35_o verse_n of_o the_o .19_o chapter_n before_o for_o there_o he_o geeve_v the_o like_a testimony_n to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v write_v 55._o there_o be_v also_o many_o other_o thing_n which_o jesus_n do_v the_o which_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v write_v every_o one_o i_o suppose_v the_o world_n can_v not_o contain_v the_o book_n that_o shall_v be_v write_v 20.30_o john_n 20.30_o bu_n this_o place_n agree_v with_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v before_o how_o that_o not_o all_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o lord_n resurrection_n be_v write_v but_o those_o only_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o persuade_v man_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o by_o he_o they_o attain_v to_o life_n everlasting_a and_o true_a blessedness_n m._n the_o very_a same_o he_o seem_v now_o to_o repeat_v again_o but_o yet_o not_o without_o some_o difference_n before_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o sign_n after_o the_o resurrection_n but_o here_o he_o speak_v of_o those_o sign_n general_o which_o christ_n wrought_v and_o show_v from_o the_o first_o to_o the_o last_o all_o the_o which_o he_o say_v be_v not_o write_v neither_o in_o this_o book_n nor_o in_o any_o other_o c._n therefore_o least_o any_o man_n shall_v suspect_v his_o word_n as_o one_o speak_v pertial_o because_o he_o be_v love_v of_o christ_n he_o cut_v off_o this_o objection_n say_v that_o he_o have_v omit_v &_o overpass_o more_o than_o he_o have_v write_v neither_o do_v he_o speak_v of_o every_o action_n of_o christ_n but_o of_o those_o which_o appertain_v to_o his_o public_a office_n m._n and_o the_o reason_n hereof_o he_o say_v be_v the_o innumerable_a multitude_n of_o christ_n deed_n say_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n will_v not_o contain_v those_o book_n which_o shall_v be_v write_v if_o all_o particular_n be_v write_v by_o which_o hiperbolicall_a speacke_v his_o mind_n be_v to_o express_v that_o multitude_n of_o book_n which_o must_v be_v write_v if_o all_o the_o action_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v write_v thing_n hiderbole_n be_v a_o excessive_a speech_n either_o in_o advaunce_v or_o de●●praesting_v any_o thing_n c._n neither_o aught_o we_o to_o judge_v this_o a_o absurd_a hyperbole_n see_v we_o bear_v with_o many_o thing_n in_o profane_a writer_n we_o must_v not_o only_o consider_v the_o number_n of_o christ_n work_n but_o also_o we_o must_v way_n the_o weight_n and_o greatness_n of_o they_o the_o divine_a majesty_n of_o christ_n which_o to_o man_n sense_n and_o understanding_n ●s_v infinite_a do_v in_o those_o his_o work_n wonderful_o shine_v if_o the_o evangelist_n have_v respect_n unto_o this_o as_o one_o astonish_v exclame_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v not_o able_a to_o conceive_v and_o comprehend_v a_o just_a and_o full_a narration_n who_o will_v marvel_v b._n and_o very_o see_v the_o act_n of_o christ_n be_v almost_o infinite_a who_o can_v have_v remember_v or_o weigh_v all_o thing_n with_o fruit_n to_o what_o end_n then_o shall_v they_o have_v be_v write_v for_o it_o have_v not_o be_v meet_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v neglect_v they_o c._n furthermore_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reprehend_v for_o use_v a_o old_a and_o accustom_a figure_n to_o commend_v the_o excellency_n of_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n bu_n furthermore_o who_o see_v not_o that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_v kind_n of_o doctrine_n which_o lead_v &_o bring_v unto_o that_o end_n to_o the_o which_o it_o be_v ordain_v and_o appoint_v but_o the_o euamgelical_a history_n be_v ordain_v to_o show_v unto_o we_o a_o way_n how_o we_o may_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n the_o which_o we_o obtain_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n the_o which_o way_n it_o do_v most_o plain_o and_o plentiful_o teach_v us._n therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o most_o perfect_a kind_n of_o doctrine_n and_o that_o the_o evangelist_n have_v put_v a_o sum_n in_o writing_n which_o may_v suffice_v to_o instruct_v we_o in_o the_o faith_n and_o also_o to_o lead_v we_o in_o the_o way_n to_o everlasting_a life_n although_o they_o have_v not_o deliver_v unto_o we_o word_n for_o word_n all_o thing_n that_o christ_n both_o speak_v and_o do_v b._n those_o thing_n therefore_o be_v write_v which_o be_v well_o weigh_v be_v plentiful_a enough_o to_o instruct_v we_o in_o all_o godliness_n i_o will_v to_o god_n they_o be_v so_o exact_o discuss_v to_o embrace_v godliness_n as_o they_o be_v narrow_o sift_v &_o stretch_v to_o maintain_v contention_n and_o brawl_n c._n wherefore_o he_o be_v sufficient_o learn_v and_o instruct_v which_o have_v profit_v in_o the_o read_n of_o this_o scripture_n and_o very_o see_v the_o apostle_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n to_o be_v witness_n unto_o we_o as_o they_o have_v faithful_o do_v their_o duty_n so_o also_o be_v it_o our_o part_n whole_o to_o depend_v upon_o their_o testimony_n and_o too_o desire_v no_o more_o than_o they_o have_v utter_v special_o see_v their_o pen_n have_v be_v dyrect_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o assure_a providence_n of_o god_n lest_o withovermuch_o matter_n they_o shall_v oppress_v our_o weak_a capacity_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o have_v choice_n may_v deliver_v so_o much_o unto_o we_o as_o he_o which_o be_v only_a wise_n and_o the_o wellspring_n itself_o of_o god_n wisdom_n know_v to_o be_v expedient_a for_o us._n a._n but_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o exposition_n of_o s._n john_n let_v we_o note_v that_o we_o have_v here_o describe_v &_o true_o offer_v unto_o we_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n that_o true_a and_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n consubstantial_a and_o coequal_a with_o the_o father_n in_o all_o thing_n but_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n according_a to_o the_o prophet_n he_o be_v incarnate_a for_o we_o he_o suffer_v he_o true_o die_v and_o be_v undoubted_o raise_v again_o from_o death_n and_o be_v make_v king_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o thing_n this_o christ_n see_v he_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o give_v unto_o we_o to_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o all_o grace_n and_o truth_n that_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n that_o ladder_n and_o gate_n of_o heaven_n that_o exalt_a serpent_n which_o make_v the_o deadly_a poison_n hurtless_a that_o water_n refresh_v the_o thirsty_a that_o son_n reconcile_a we_o to_o the_o father_n that_o bread_n of_o life_n that_o light_o of_o the_o world_n that_o shepherd_n of_o the_o sheep_n the_o door_n the_o resurrection_n the_o life_n the_o grow_a wheat_n corn_n the_o conqueror_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n the_o example_n of_o life_n the_o way_n the_o truth_n the_o true_a and_o fruitful_a vine_n to_o be_v short_a the_o redemption_n salvation_n satisfaction_n and_o righteousness_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o whole_a world_n see_v i_o say_v christ_n be_v the_o plentiful_a treasury_n of_o all_o these_o riches_n and_o grace_n unto_o we_o let_v we_o give_v thanks_n unto_o god_n the_o father_n of_o the_o same_o jesu_n christ_n who_o have_v not_o spare_v his_o only_a son_n but_o have_v give_v he_o for_o we_o to_o redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o to_o make_v we_o a_o holy_a and_o acceptable_a people_n unto_o himself_o devout_o give_v to_o all_o good_a work_n that_o be_v now_o deliver_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o our_o enemy_n we_o may_v serve_v he_o in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n before_o he_o all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n to_o he_o be_v glory_n empire_n and_o dominion_n now_o and_o for_o ever_o amen_n finis_fw-la laus_fw-la deo_fw-la ¶_o imprint_v at_o london_n by_o thomas_n marsh_n dwell_v in_o fleetstreet_n near_o unto_o saint_n dunsion_n church_n
this_o faith_n be_v not_o lively_a in_o they_o and_o not_o so_o virtuous_a as_o it_o beecame_v the_o same_o because_o christ_n geve_v not_o unto_o his_o disciple_n the_o spirit_n of_o fear_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o constancy_n insomuche_o that_o they_o dare_v bold_o confess_v that_o which_o they_o have_v learn_v of_o he_o and_o although_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o these_o man_n be_v quite_o dumb_a yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o they_o make_v no_o true_a confession_n the_o evangelist_n simple_o deni_v that_o they_o profess_v their_o faith_n for_o this_o have_v be_v true_a and_o lawful_a confession_n to_o have_v open_o give_v their_o name_n and_o profess_a christ_n wherefore_o let_v no_o man_n flatter_v himself_o which_o in_o any_o part_n hyde_v and_o dissemble_v his_o faith_n least_o he_o shall_v incur_v the_o displeasure_n and_o hatred_n of_o man_n for_o although_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v odiouse_a that_o fear_n be_v not_o excusable_a which_o make_v we_o slide_v from_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o name_n though_o but_o the_o breadth_n of_o a_o hair_n bu_n a_o great_a number_n at_o this_o day_n have_v the_o very_a same_o disease_n that_o these_o ruler_n have_v for_o they_o understand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n they_o know_v the_o lawful_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o papistry_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o in_o the_o papacy_n the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o minister_v accord_v to_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o these_o thing_n they_o see_v and_o know_v but_o yet_o nevertheless_o for_o fear_n and_o the_o love_n of_o temporal_a thing_n they_o communicate_v with_o the_o very_a same_o they_o halt_v on_o both_o side_n and_o do_v not_o bold_o confess_v the_o truth_n all_o these_o man_n very_o do_v great_o offend_v and_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v confirm_v in_o their_o error_n to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o so_o be_v they_o retain_v that_o which_o be_v true_a in_o their_o heart_n and_o do_v think_v well_o in_o their_o mind_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n have_v a_o like_n of_o these_o abomination_n institute_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o come_v unto_o the_o mass_n not_o as_o to_o the_o mass_n but_o as_o unto_o the_o lord_n supper_n god_n hate_v that_o hypocritical_a dissimulation_n and_o love_v truth_n and_o sincerity_n concern_v excommunication_n read_v the_o nine_o chapter_n go_v before_o beginning_n at_o the_o .22_o verse_n 43._o for_o they_o love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n r._n thou_o may_v see_v in_o this_o place_n the_o cause_n why_o few_o of_o the_o ruler_n mighty_a man_n and_o wise_a man_n do_v not_o sincerelye_o confess_v the_o gospel_n because_o the_o gospel_n bring_v with_o it_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o forsake_v of_o earthly_a good_n now_o see_v the_o ruler_n can_v not_o abide_v to_o forsake_v their_o tyranny_n and_o see_v it_o seem_v foolish_a to_o the_o wise_a man_n to_o resign_v the_o wisdom_n of_o reason_n to_o the_o bare_a and_o weak_a word_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o have_v ever_o to_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o very_o few_o mighty_a and_o wise_a man_n true_o confess_v christ_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o sainte_n paul_n behold_v your_o call_a brother_n how_o that_o not_o many_o wise_a man_n after_o the_o flesh_n not_o many_o mighty_a not_o many_o of_o high_a degree_n be_v call_v but_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a c._n the_o evangelist_n lay_v no_o superstition_n to_o these_o mean_v charge_n but_o only_o say_v that_o they_o seek_v to_o avoid_v the_o reproach_n and_o dispraise_n of_o man_n for_o if_o so_o be_v ambition_n prevayl_v more_o with_o they_o than_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v delyver_v by_o a_o certain_a light_a fear_n of_o conscience_n now_o let_v the_o reader_n note_n how_o great_o god_n mislike_v and_o condemn_v their_o fear_n who_o dissemble_v their_o faith_n before_o man_n for_o fear_n of_o displeasure_n what_o worse_a thing_n can_v there_o be_v yea_o what_o can_v be_v more_o beastly_a than_o to_o prefer_v the_o vain_a like_n and_o commendation_n of_o man_n before_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o he_o pronounce_v all_o those_o to_o be_v such_o who_o forsake_v the_o displeasure_n of_o man_n when_o they_o shall_v confess_v a_o pure_a &_o true_a faith_n and_o that_o just_o for_o the_o apostell_n commend_v the_o invinsyble_a constancy_n of_o moses_n 27._o heb._n ●i_fw-la 27._o say_v that_o he_o endure_v even_o as_o though_o he_o have_v see_v he_o which_o be_v invisible_a by_o which_o word_n he_o geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o when_o a_o man_n fasten_v his_o eye_n upon_o god_n his_o heart_n will_v be_v invincible_a &_o more_o fast_a than_o a_o adamant_n stoan_n herupon_o therefore_o come_v that_o cowardliness_n which_o make_v we_o to_o fall_v to_o false_a dissimulation_n because_o we_o have_v whole_o respect_n unto_o this_o world_n for_o the_o sincere_a aspect_n and_o behold_v of_o god_n do_v drive_v away_o all_o smoke_n and_o vanity_n of_o riches_n and_o honour_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o a_o small_a and_o venial_a offence_n as_o some_o imagine_v to_o deny_v christ_n see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o this_o place_n say_v that_o those_o ruler_n which_o confess_v not_o christ_n love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n bu_n and_o christ_n himself_o say_v he_o which_o deni_v i_o before_o man_n shall_v be_v deny_v of_o i_o before_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n 10.33_o mat._n 10.33_o c._n to_o love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n in_o this_o place_n signify_v to_o desire_v to_o be_v in_o estimation_n and_o favour_n among_o man_n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n mean_v that_o these_o ruler_n be_v so_o addict_v unto_o the_o world_n that_o they_o rather_o desire_v to_o please_v man_n then_o god_n r._n the_o praise_n of_o man_n be_v to_o be_v count_v honest_a good_a and_o wise_a the_o glory_n and_o praise_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v object_v contemn_v scorn_a crucify_a and_o to_o be_v cruel_o slay_v for_o by_o these_o mean_v christ_n enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o father_n and_o the_o father_n by_o they_o be_v glorify_v in_o the_o world_n he_o therefore_o which_o prefer_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n before_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v vain_a and_o miserable_a see_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n tend_v to_o reproache_v and_o shame_n but_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n bring_v to_o everlasting_a life_n 44._o jesus_n cry_v and_o say_v he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o believe_v not_o on_o i_o but_o on_o he_o that_o send_v i_o m._n all_o this_o place_n contain_v a_o serious_a and_o summarie_a declaration_n by_o which_o the_o lord_n make_v plain_a protestation_n concern_v himself_o and_o his_o dispensation_n as_o that_o he_o do_v not_o defend_v his_o own_o cause_n that_o he_o come_v not_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n but_o that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n that_o he_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n send_v to_o do_v good_a and_o not_o harm_n that_o he_o speak_v nothing_o of_o himself_o and_o therefore_o that_o they_o which_o believe_v in_o he_o beeleéue_a not_o in_o he_o but_o in_o the_o father_n which_o send_v he_o and_o that_o he_o judge_v not_o the_o unbelieved_a but_o that_o they_o must_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o word_n which_o he_o have_v preach_v and_o by_o this_o his_o serious_a contestation_n his_o purpose_n be_v in_o plain_a word_n to_o gyve_v his_o last_o farewell_n to_o this_o blind_a and_o obstinate_a people_n to_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o unbelefe_n upon_o their_o own_o head_n and_o manifestlye_o to_o testefie_v of_o his_o righteousness_n and_o innocence_n and_o this_o he_o do_v not_o symp_o and_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o one_o or_o two_o but_o free_o and_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n which_o the_o evangelist_n noat_v by_o these_o word_n jesus_n cry_v and_o say_v so_o do_v the_o saint_n of_o god_n in_o old_a time_n protest_v before_o the_o people_n show_v that_o they_o have_v omit_v nothing_o 20.33_o deut_n 32_o 1._o josua_n 23.4_o king_n 12_o 3._o act._n 20.33_o which_o pertain_v to_o the_o office_n commit_v unto_o they_o as_o moses_n josua_n samuel_n and_o paul_n b._n also_o the_o purpose_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v by_o his_o example_n speak_v of_o himself_o with_o so_o loud_a a_o voice_n than_o the_o which_o nothing_o greve_v more_o the_o pharise_n to_o incourag_n those_o fearful_a ruler_n which_o believe_v on_o he_o that_o with_o he_o they_o may_v despise_v the_o pharise_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o may_v do_v this_o he_o bring_v a_o most_o urgent_a and_o strong_a reason_n affirminge_v that_o